Project
Gutenberg Consortia
Center's
World Public
Library Collection
Project Gutenberg Consortia Center Collection, a member of the World
Public Library,http://WorldLibrary.net,
bringing the world's eBook collections together.
Conditions
of Use:
This
eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use
it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with
this eBook or full complete details are online at: http://gutenberg.net/license.
Here are 3 of the more major items to consider:
The eBooks
on the PG sites are not 100% public domain, some of them are copyrighted
and used by permission and thus you may charge for redistribution
only via direct permission from the copyright holders.
Project
Gutenberg is a registered trademark [TM]. For any other purpose
than to redistribute eBooks containing the entire Project Gutenberg
file free of charge and with the headers intact, permission is
required.
The public
domain status is per U.S. copyright law. This eBook is from the
Project Gutenberg Consortia Center of the United States.
The mission of the Project Gutenberg Consortia Center is to provide
a similar framework for the collection of eBook collections as does
Project Gutenberg for single eBooks, operating under the practices,
and general guidelines of Project Gutenberg. The major additional
function of Project Gutenberg Consortia Center is to manage the addition
of large collections of eBooks from other eBook creation and collection
centers around the world.
For more great classic literature visit:
The
World Public Library and Project Gutenberg Consortia Center, bringing
the world's eBook collections together http://www.Gutenberg.us
_Within sight of an English port, and within hail of English ships
as they pass on to our empire in the East, there is a land where the
ways of life are the same to-day as they were a thousand years ago; a
land wherein government is oppression, wherein law is tyranny, wherein
justice is bought and sold, wherein it is a terror to be rich and a
danger to be poor, wherein man may still be the slave of man, and
women is no more than a creature of lust--a reproach to Europe, a
disgrace to the century, an outrage on humanity, a blight on religion!
That land is Morocco!
This is a story of Morocco in the last years of the Sultan Abd
er-Rahman. The ashes of that tyrant are cold, and his grandson sits in
his place; but men who earned his displeasure linger yet in his
noisome dungeons, and women who won his embraces are starving at this
hour in the prison-palaces in which he immured them. His reign is a
story of yesterday; he is gone, he is forgotten; no man so meek and
none so mean but he might spit upon his tomb. Yet the evil work which
he did in his evil time is done to-day, if not by his grandson, then
in his grandson's name--the degradation of man's honour, the cruel
wrong of woman's, the shame of base usury, and the iniquity of justice
that may be bought! Of such corruption this story will tell, for it
is a tale of tyranny that is every day repeated, a voice of suffering
going up hourly to the powers of the world, calling on them to forget
the secret hopes and petty jealousies whereof Morocco is a cause, to
think no more of any scramble for territory when the fated day of that
doomed land has come, and only to look to it and see that he who fills
the throne of Abd er-Rahman shall be the last to sit there.
Yet it is the grandeur of human nature that when it is trodden down
it waits for no decree of nations, but finds its own solace amid the
baffled struggle against inimical power in the hopes of an exalted
faith. That cry of the soul to be lifted out of the bondage of the
narrow circle of life, which carries up to God the protest and
yearning of suffering man, never finds a more sublime expression than
where humanity is oppressed and religion is corrupt. On the one hand,
the hard experience of daily existence; on the other hand, the soul
crying out that the things of this world are not the true realities.
Savage vices make savage virtues. God and man are brought face to
face.
In the heart of Morocco there is one man who lives a life that is
like a hymn, appealing to God against tyranny and corruption and
shame. This great soul is the leader of a vast following which has
come to him from every scoured and beaten corner of the land. His
voice sounds throughout Barbary, and wheresoever men are broken they
go to him, and wheresoever women are fallen and wrecked they seek the
mercy and the shelter of his face. He is poor, and has nothing to give
them save one thing only, but that is the best thing of all--it is
hope. Not hope in life, but hope in death, the sublime hope whose
radiance is always around him. Man that veils his face before the
mysteries of the hereafter, and science that reckons the laws of
nature and ignores the power of God, have no place with the Mahdi. The
unseen is his certainty; the miracle is all in all to him; he throngs
the air with marvels; God speaks to him in dreams when he sleeps, and
warns and directs him by signs when he is awake.
With this man, so singular a mixture of the haughty chief and the
joyous child, there is another, a woman, his wife. She is beautiful
with a beauty rarely seen in other women, and her senses are subtle
beyond the wonders of enchantment. Together these two, with their
ragged fellowship of the poor behind them, having no homes and no
possessions, pass from place to place, unharmed and unhindered,
through that land of intolerance and iniquity, being protected and
reverenced by virtue of the superstition which accepts them for
Saints. Who are they? What have they been?_
Israel was the son of a Jewish banker at Tangier. His mother was
the daughter of a banker in London. The father's name was Oliel; the
mother's was Sara. Oliel had held business connections with the house
of Sara's father, and he came over to England that he might have a
personal meeting with his correspondent. The English banker lived over
his office, near Holborn Bars, and Oliel met with his family. It
consisted of one daughter by a first wife, long dead, and three sons
by a second wife, still living. They were not altogether a happy
household, and the chief apparent cause of discord was the child of
the first wife in the home of the second. Oliel was a man of quick
perception, and he saw the difficulty. That was how it came about
that he was married to Sara. When he returned to Morocco he was some
thousand pounds richer than when he left it, and he had a capable and
personable wife into his bargain.
Oliel was a self-centred and silent man, absorbed in getting and
spending, always taking care to have much of the one, and no more than
he could help of the other. Sara was a nervous and sensitive little
woman, hungering for communion and for sympathy. She got little of
either from her husband, and grew to be as silent as he. With the
people of the country of her adoption, whether Jews or Moors, she
made no headway. She never even learnt their language.
Two years passed, and then a child was born to her. This was
Israel, and for many a year thereafter he was all the world to the
lonely woman. His coming made no apparent difference to his father.
He grew to be a tall and comely boy, quick and bright, and inclined
to be of a sweet and cheerful disposition. But the school of his
upbringing was a hard one. A Jewish child in Morocco might know from
his cradle that he was not born a Moor and a Mohammedan.
When the boy was eight years old his father married a second wife,
his first wife being still alive. This was lawful, though unusual in
Tangier. The new marriage, which was only another business
transaction to Oliel, was a shock and a terror to Sara. Nevertheless,
she supported its penalties through three weary years, sinking visibly
under them day after day. By that time a second family had begun to
share her husband's house, the rivalry of the mothers had threatened
to extend to the children, the domesticity of home was destroyed and
its harmony was no longer possible. Then she left Oliel, and fled
back to England, taking Israel with her.
Her father was dead, and the welcome she got of her half-brothers
was not warm. They had no sympathy with her rebellion against her
husband's second marriage. If she had married into a foreign country,
she should abide by the ways of it. Sara was heartbroken. Her health
had long been poor, and now it failed her utterly. In less than a
month she died. On her deathbed she committed her boy to the care of
her brothers, and implored them not to send him back to Morocco.
For years thereafter Israel's life in London was a stern one. If
he had no longer to submit to the open contempt of the Moors, the
kicks and insults of the streets, he had to learn how bitter is the
bread that one is forced to eat at another's table. When he should
have been still at school he was set to some menial occupation in the
bank at Holborn Bars, and when he ought to have risen at his desk he
was required to teach the sons of prosperous men the way to go above
him. Life was playing an evil game with him, and, though he won, it
must be at a bitter price.
Thus twelve years went by, and Israel, now three-and-twenty, was a
tall, silent, very sedate young man, clear-headed on all subjects, and
a master of figures. Never once during that time had his father
written to him, or otherwise recognised his existence, though knowing
of his whereabouts from the first by the zealous importunities of his
uncles. Then one day a letter came written in distant tone and formal
manner, announcing that the writer had been some time confined to his
bed, and did not expect to leave it; that the children of his second
wife had died in infancy; that he was alone, and had no one of his own
flesh and blood to look to his business, which was therefore in the
hands of strangers, who robbed him; and finally, that if Israel felt
any duty towards his father, or, failing that, if he had any wish to
consult his own interest, he would lose no time in leaving England for
Morocco.
Israel read the letter without a throb of filial affection; but,
nevertheless, he concluded to obey its summons. A fortnight later he
landed at Tangier. He had come too late. His father had died the day
before. The weather was stormy, and the surf on the shore was heavy,
and thus it chanced that, even while the crazy old packet on which he
sailed lay all day beating about the bay, in fear of being dashed on
to the ruins of the mole, his father's body was being buried in the
little Jewish cemetery outside the eastern walls, and his cousins, and
cousins' cousins, to the fifth degree, without loss of time or waste
of sentiment, were busily dividing his inheritance among them.
Next day, as his father's heir, he claimed from the Moorish court
the restitution of his father's substance. But his cousins made the
Kadi, the judge, a present of a hundred dollars, and he was declared
to be an impostor, who could not establish his identity. Producing
his father's letter which had summoned him from London, he appealed
from the Kadi to the Aolama, men wise in the law, who acted as
referees in disputed cases; but it was decided that as a Jew he had no
right in Mohammedan law to offer evidence in a civil court. He laid
his case before the British Consul, but was found to have no claim to
English intervention, being a subject of the Sultan both by birth and
parentage. Meantime, his dispute with his cousins was set at rest for
ever by the Governor of the town, who, concluding that his father had
left neither will nor heirs, confiscated everything he had possessed
to the public treasury--that is to say, to the Kaid's own uses.
Thus he found himself without standing ground in Morocco, whether
as a Jew, a Moor, or an Englishman, a stranger in his father's
country, and openly branded as a cheat. That he did not return to
England promptly was because he was already a man of indomitable
spirit. Besides that, the treatment he was having now was but of a
piece with what he had received at all times. Nothing had availed to
crush him, even as nothing ever does avail to crush a man of
character. But the obstacles and torments which make no impression on
the mind of a strong man often make a very sensible impression on his
heart; the mind triumphs, it is the heart that suffers; the mind
strengthens and expands after every besetting plague of life, but the
heart withers and wears away.
So far from flying from Morocco when things conspired together to
beat him down, Israel looked about with an equal mind for the means of
settling there.
His opportunity came early. The Governor, either by qualm of
conscience or further freak of selfishness, got him the place of head
of the Oomana, the three Administrators of Customs at Tangier. He
held the post six months only, to the complete satisfaction of the
Kaid, but amid the muttered discontent of the merchants and tradesmen.
Then the Governor of Tetuan, a bigger town lying a long day's journey
to the east, hearing of Israel that as Ameen of Tangier he had doubled
the custom revenues in half a year, invited him to fill an informal,
unofficial, and irregular position as assessor of tributes.
Now, it would be a long task to tell of the work which Israel did
in his new calling: how he regulated the market dues, and appointed a
Mut'hasseb, a clerk of the market, to collect them-- so many
moozoonahs for every camel sold, so many for every horse, mule, and
ass, so many floos for every fowl, and so many metkals for the
purchase and sale of every slave; how he numbered the houses and made
lists of the trades, assessing their tribute by the value of their
businesses--so much for gun-making, so much for weaving, so much for
tanning, and so on through the line of them, great and small, good and
bad, even from the trades of the Jewish silversmiths and the Moorish
packsaddle-makers down to the callings of the Arab water-carriers and
the ninety public women.
All this he did by the strict law and letter of the Koran, which
entitled the Sultan to a tithe of all earnings whatsoever; but it
would not wrong the truth to say that he did it also by the impulse of
a sour and saddened heart. The world had shown no mercy to him, and
he need show no mercy to the world. Why talk of pity? It was only a
name, an idea a mocking thought. In the actual reckoning of life there
was no such name as pity. Thus did Israel justify himself in all his
dealings, whatever their severity and the rigour wherewith they
wrought.
And the people felt the strong hand that was on them, and they
cursed it.
"Ya Allah! Allah!" the Moors would cry. "Who is this Jew--this
son of the English--that he should be made our master?"
They muttered at him in the streets, they scowled upon him, and at
length they insulted him openly. Since his return from England he had
resumed the dress of his race in his country-- the long dark gabardine
or kaftan, with a scarf for girdle, the black slippers, and the black
skull-cap. And, going one day by the Grand Mosque, a group of the
beggars; who lay always by the gate, called on him to uncover his
feet.
"Jew! Dog!" they cried, "there is no god but God! Curses on your
relations! Off with your slippers!"
He paid no heed to their commands, but made straight onward. Then
one blear-eyed and scab-faced cripple scrambled up and struck off his
cap with a crutch. He picked it up again without a look or a word,
and strode away. But next morning, at early prayers, there was a
place empty at the door of the mosque. Its accustomed occupant lay in
the prison at the Kasbah.
And if the Muslimeen hated Israel for what he was doing for their
Governor, the Jews hated him yet more because it was being done for a
Moor.
"He has sold himself to our enemy," they said, "against the welfare
of his own nation."
At the synagogue they ignored him, and in taking the votes of their
people they counted others and passed him by. He showed no malice.
Only his strong face twitched at each fresh insult and his head was
held higher. Only this, and one other sign of suffering in that
secret place of his withering heart, which God's eye alone could see.
Thus far he had done no more to Moor and Jew than exact that tenth
part of their substance which the faiths of both required that they
should pay. But now his work went further. A little group of old
Jews, all held in honour among their people--Abraham Ohana, nicknamed
Pigman, son of a former rabbi; Judah ben Lolo, an elder of his
synagogue; and Reuben Maliki, keeper of the poor-box--were seized and
cast into the Kasbah for gross and base usury.
At this the Jewish quarter was thrown into wild hubbub. The hand
that was on their people was a daring and terrible one. None doubted
whose hand it was--it was the hand of young Israel the Jew.
When the three old usurers had bought themselves out of the Kasbah,
they put their heads together and said, "Let us drive this fellow out
of the Mellah, and so shall he be driven out of the town." Then the
owner of the house which Israel rented for his lodging evicted him by
a poor excuse, and all other Jewish owners refused him as tenant. But
the conspiracy failed.By command of the Governor, or by his influence,
Israel was lodged by the Nadir, the administrator of mosque property,
in one of the houses belonging to the mosque on the Moorish side of
the Mellah walls.
Seeing this, the usurers laid their heads together again and said,
"Let us see that no man of our nation serve him, and so shall his life
be a burden." Then the two Jews who had been his servants deserted
him, and when he asked for Moors he was told that the faithful might
not obey the unbeliever; and when he would have sent for negroes out
of the Soudan he was warned that a Jew might not hold a slave. But the
conspiracy failed again. Two black female slaves from Soos, named
Fatimah and Habeebah, were bought in the name of the Governor and
assigned to Israel's service.
And when it was seen at length that nothing availed to disturb
Israel's material welfare, the three base usurers laid their heads
together yet again, that they might prey upon his superstitious fears,
and they said, "He is our enemy, but he is a Jew: let the woman who
is named the prophetess put her curse upon him." Then she who was so
called, one Rebecca Bensabbot, deaf as a stone, weak in her intellect,
seventy years of age, and living fifty years on the poor-box which
Reuben Maliki kept, crossed Israel in the streets, and cursed him as a
son of Beelzebub predicting that, even as he had made the walls of the
Kasbah to echo with the groans of God's elect, so should his own
spirit be broken within them and his forehead humbled to the earth.
He stood while he heard her out, and his strong lip trembled at he
words; but he only smiled coldly, and passed on in silence.
"The clouds are not hurt," he thought, "by the bark of dogs."
Thus did his brethren of Judah revile him, and thus did they
torture him; yet there was one among them who did neither. This was
the daughter of their Grand Rabbi, David ben Ohana. Her name was
Ruth. She was young, and God had given her grace and she was
beautiful, and many young Jewish men, of Tetuan had vied with each
other in vain for he favour. Of Israel's duty she knew little, save
what report had said of it, that it was evil; and of the act which had
made him an outcast among his own people, and an Ishmael among the
sons of Ishmael she could form no judgment. But what a woman's eyes
might see in him, without help of other knowledge, that she saw.
She had marked him in the synagogue, that his face was noble and
his manners gracious; that he was young, but only as one who had been
cheated of his youth and had missed his early manhood, the when he was
ignored he ignored his insult, and when he was reviled he answered not
again; in a word, the he was silent and strong and alone, and, above
all that he was sad.
These were credentials enough to the true girl's favour, and
Israel soon learnt that the house of the Rabbi was open to him. There
the lonely man first found himself. The cold eyes of his little world
had seen him as his father's son, but the light and warmth of the eyes
of Ruth saw him as the son of his mother also. The Rabbi himself was
old, very old--ninety years of age--and length of days had taught him
charity. And so it was that when, in due time, Israel came with many
excuses and asked for Ruth in marriage, the Rabbi gave her to him.
The betrothal followed, but none save the notary and his witnesses
stood beside Israel when he crossed hands over the handkerchief; and,
when the marriage came in its course, few stood beside the Chief
Rabbi. Nevertheless, all the Jews of the quarter and all the Moors of
Tetuan were alive to what was happening, and on the night of the
marriage a great company of both peoples, though chiefly of the rabble
among them, gathered in front of the Rabbi's house that they might
hiss and jeer.
The Chacham heard them from where he sat under the stars in his
patio, and when at last the voice of Rebecca the prophetess came to
him above the tumult, crying, "Woe to her that has married the enemy
of her nation, and woe to him that gave her against the hope of his
people! They shall taste death. He shall see them fall from his side
and die," then the old man listened and trembled visibly. In
confusion and fierce anger he rose up and stumbled through the crooked
passage to the door, and flinging it wide, he stood in the doorway
facing them that stood without.
"Peace! Peace!" he cried, "and shame! shame! Remember the doom
of him that shall curse the high priest of the Lord."
This he spoke in a voice that shook with wrath. Then suddenly,
his voice failing him, he said in a broken whisper, "My good people,
what is this? Your servant is grown old in your service. Sixty and
odd years he has shared your sorrows and your burdens. What has he
done this day that your women should lift up their voices against
him?"
But, in awe of his white head in the moonlight, the rabble that
stood in the darkness were silent and made no answer. Then he
staggered back, and Israel helped him into his house, and Ruth did
what she could to compose him. But he was woefully shaken, and that
night he died.
When the Rabbi's death became known in the morning, the Jews
whispered, "It is the first-fruits!" and the Moors touched their
foreheads and murmured "It is written!"
Israel paid no heed to Jew or Moor, but in due time he set about
the building of a house for himself and for Ruth, that they might live
in comfort many years together. In the south-east corner of the
Mellah he placed it, and he built it partly in the Moorish and partly
in the English fashion, with an open court and corridors, marble
pillars, and a marble staircase, walls of small tiles, and ceilings
of stalactites, but also with windows and with doors. And when his
house was raised he put no haities into it, and spread no mattresses
on the floors, but sent for tables and chairs and couches out of
England; and everything he did in this wise cut him off the more from
the people about him, both Moors and Jews.
And being settled at last, and his own master in his own dwelling,
out of the power of his enemies to push him back into the streets,
suddenly it occurred to him for the first time that whereas the house
he had built was a refuge for himself, it was doomed to be little
better than a prison for his wife. In marrying Ruth he had enlarged
the circle of his intimates by one faithful and loving soul, but in
marrying him she had reduced even her friends to that number. Her
father was dead; if she was the daughter of a Chief Rabbi she was also
the wife of an outcast, the companion of a pariah, and save for him,
she must be for ever alone. Even their bondwomen still spoke a
foreign dialect, and commerce with them was mainly by signs.
Thinking of all this with some remorse, one idea fixed itself on
Israel's mind, one hope on his heart--that Ruth might soon bear a
child. Then would her solitude be broken by the dearest company that
a woman might know on earth. And, if he had wronged her, his child
would make amends.
Israel thought of this again and again. The delicious hope pursued
him. It was his secret, and he never gave it speech. But time passed,
and no child was born. And Ruth herself saw that she was barren, and
she began to cast down her head before her husband. Israel's hope was
of longer life, but the truth dawned upon him at last. Then, when he
perceived that his wife was ashamed, a great tenderness came over him.
He had been thinking of her; that a child would bring her solace, and
meanwhile she had thought only of him, that a child would be his
pride. After that he never went abroad but he came home with stories
of women wailing at the cemetery over the tombs of their babes, of men
broken in heart for loss of their sons, and of how they were best
treated of God who were given no children.
This served his big soul for a time to cheat it of its
disappointment, half deceiving Ruth, and deceiving himself entirely.
But one day the woman Rebecca met him again at the street-corner by
his own house, and she lifted her gaunt finger into his face, and
cried, "Israel ben Oliel, the judgment of the Lord is upon you, and
will not suffer you to raise up children to be a reproach and a curse
among your people!"
"Out upon you, woman!" cried Israel, and almost in the first
delirium of his pain he had lifted his hand to strike her. Her other
predictions had passed him by, but this one had smitten him. He went
home and shut himself in his room, and throughout that day he let no
one come near to him.
Israel knew his own heart at last. At his wife's barrenness he was
now angry with the anger of a proud man whose pride had been abased.
What was the worth of it, after all, that he had conquered the fate
that had first beaten him down? What did it come to that the world
was at his feet? Heaven was above him, and the poorest man in the
Mellah who was the father of a child might look down on him with
contempt.
That night sleep forsook his eyelids, and his mouth was parched
and his spirit bitter. And sometimes he reproached himself with a
thousand offences, and sometimes he searched the Scriptures, that he
might persuade himself that he had walked blameless before the Lord in
the ordinances and commandments of God.
Meantime, Ruth, in her solitude, remembered that it was now three
years since she had been married to Israel, and that by the laws,
both of their race and their country, a woman who had been long barren
might straightway be divorced by her husband.
Next morning a message of business came from the Khaleefa, but
Israel would not answer it. Then came an order to him from the
Governor, but still he paid no heed. At length he heard a feeble
knock at the door of his room. It was Ruth, his wife, and he opened
to her and she entered.
"Send me away from you!" she cried. "Send me away!"
"Not for the place of the Kaid," he answered stoutly; "no, nor the
throne of the Sultan!"
At that she fell on his neck and kissed him, and they mingled
their tears together. But he comforted her at length, and said,
"Look up, my dearest! look up! I am a proud man among men, but it
is even as the Lord may deal with me. And which of us shall murmur
against God?"
At that word Ruth lifted her head from his bosom and her eyes were
full of a sudden thought.
"Then let us ask of the Lord," she whispered hotly, "and surely He
will hear our prayer."
"It is the voice of the Lord Himself!" cried Israel; "and this day
it shall be done!"
At the time of evening prayers Israel and Ruth went up hand in hand
together to the synagogue, in a narrow lane off the Sok el Foki. And
Ruth knelt in her place in the gallery close under the iron grating
and the candles that hung above it, and she prayed: "O Lord, have pity
on this Thy servant, and take away her reproach among women. Give her
grace in Thine eyes, O Lord, that her husband be not ashamed. Grant
her a child of Thy mercy, that his eye may smile upon her. Yet not as
she willeth, but as Thou willest, O Lord, and Thy servant will be
satisfied."
But Israel stood long on the floor with his hand on his heart and
his eyes to the ground, and he called on God as a debtor that will not
be appeased, saying: How long wilt Thou forget me, O Lord? My enemies
triumph over me and foretell Thy doom upon me. They sit in the
lurking-places of the streets to deride me. Confound my enemies, O
Lord, and rebuke their counsels. Remember Ruth, I beseech Thee, that
she is patient and her heart is humbled. Give her children of Thy
servant, and her first-born shall be sanctified unto Thee. Give her
one child, and it shall be Thine--if it is a son, to be a Rabbi in Thy
synagogues. Hear me, O Lord, and give heed to my cry, for behold, I
swear it before Thee. One child, but one, only one, son or daughter,
and all my desire is before Thee. How long wilt Thou forget me, O
Lord?"
The message of the Khaleefa which Israel had not answered in his
trouble was a request from the Shereef of Wazzan that he should come
without delay to that town to count his rent-charges and assess his
dues. This request the Governor had transformed into a command, for
the Shereef was a prince of Islam in his own country, and in many
provinces the believers paid him tribute. So in three days' time
Israel was ready to set out on his journey, with men and mules at his
door, and camels packed with tents. He was likely to be some months
absent from Tetuan, and it was impossible that Ruth should go with
him. They had never been separated before, and Ruth's concern was
that they should be so long parted, but Israel's was a deeper matter.
"Ruth," he said when his time came, "I am going away from you, but
my enemies remain. They see evil in all my doings, and in this act
also they will find offence. Promise me that if they make a mock at
you for your husband's sake you will not see them; if they taunt you
that you will not hear them; and if they ask anything concerning me
that you will answer them not at all."
And Ruth promised him that if his enemies made a mock at her she
should be as one that was blind, if they taunted her as one that was
deaf, and if they questioned her concerning her husband as one that
was dumb. Then they parted with many tears and embraces.
Israel was half a year absent in the town and province of Wazzan,
and, having finished the work which he came to do, he was sent back to
Tetuan loaded with presents from the Shereef, and surrounded by
soldiers and attendants, who did not leave him until they had brought
him to the door of his own house.
And there, in her chamber, sat Ruth awaiting him, her eyes dim with
tears of joy, her throat throbbing like the throat of a bird, and
great news on her tongue.
"Listen," she whispered; "I have something to tell you--"
"Ah, I know it," he cried; "I know it already. I see it in your
eyes."
"Only listen," she whispered again, while she toyed with the neck
of his kaftan, and coloured deeply, not daring to look into his face.
Their prayer in the synagogue had been heard, and the child they
had asked for was to come.
Israel was like a man beside himself with joy. He burst in upon
the message of his wife, and caught her to his breast again and again,
and kissed her. Long they stood together so, while he told her of
the chances which had befallen him during his absence from her, and
she told him of her solitude of six long months, unbroken save for the
poor company of Fatimah and Habeebah, wherein she had been blind and
deaf and dumb to all the world.
During the months thereafter until Ruth's time was full Israel sat
with her constantly. He could scarce suffer himself to leave her
company. He covered her chamber with fruits and flowers. There was no
desire of her heart but he fulfilled it. And they talked together
lovingly of how they would name the child when the time came to name
it. Israel concluded that if it was a son it should be called David,
and Ruth decided that if it was a daughter it should be called Naomi.
And Ruth delighted to tell of how when it was weaned she should take
it up to the synagogue and say, "O Lord: I am the woman that knelt
before Thee praying. For this child I prayed, and Thou hast heard my
prayer." And Israel told of how his son should grow up to be a Rabbi
to minister before God, and how in those days it should come to pass
that the children of his father's enemies should crouch to him for a
piece of silver and a morsel of bread. Thus they built themselves
castles in the air for the future of the child that was to come.
Ruth's time came at last, and it was also the time of the Feast of
the Passover, being in the month of Nisan. This was a cause of joy to
Israel, for he was eager to triumph over his enemies face to face, and
he could not wait eight other days for the Feast of the circumcision.
So he set a supper fit for a king: the fore-leg of a sheep and the
fore-leg of an ox, the egg roasted in ashes, the balls of Charoseth,
the three Mitzvoth, and the wine, And by the time the supper was ready
the midwife had been summoned, and it was the day of the night of the
Seder.
Then Israel sent messengers round the Mellah to summon his guests.
Only his enemies he invited, his bitterest foes, his unceasing
revilers, and among them were the three base usurers, Abraham Pigman,
Judah ben Lolo, and Reuben Maliki. "They cursed me," he thought,
"and I shall look on their confusion." His heart thirsted to summon
Rebecca Bensabbot also, but well he knew that her dainty masters would
not sit at meat with her.
And when the enemies were bidden, all of them excused themselves
and refused, saying it was the Feast of the Passover, when no man
should sit save in his own house and at his own table. But Israel was
not to be gainsaid. He went out to them himself, and said, "Come, let
bygones be bygones. It is the feast of our nation. Let us eat and
drink together." So, partly by his importunity, but mainly in their
bewilderment, yet against all rule and custom, they suffered
themselves to go with him.
And when they were come into his house and were seated about his
table in the patio, and he had washed his hands and taken the wine
and blessed it, and passed it to all, and they had drunk together, he
could not keep back his tongue from taunting them. Then when he had
washed again and dipped the celery in the vinegar, and they had drunk
of the wine once more, he taunted them afresh and laughed. But
nothing yet had they understood of his meaning, and they looked into
each other's faces and asked, "What is it?"
"Wait! Only wait!" Israel answered. "You shall see!"
At that moment Ruth sent for him to her chamber, and he went in to
her.
"I am a sorrowful woman," she said. "Some evil is about to
befall-- I know it, I feel it."
But he only rallied her and laughed again, and prophesied joy on
the morrow. Then, returning to the patio, where the passover cakes
had been broken, he called for the supper, and bade his guests to eat
and drink as much as their hearts desired.
They could do neither now, for the fear that possessed them at
sight of Israel's frenzy. The three old usurers, Abraham, Judah, and
Reuben, rose to go, but Israel cried, "Stay! Stay, and see what is
come!" and under the very force of his will they yielded and sat down
again.
Still Israel drank and laughed and derided them. In the wild
torrent of his madness he called them by names they knew and by names
they did not know-- Harpagon, Shylock, Bildad, Elihu--and at every
new name he laughed again. And while he carried himself so in the
outer court the slave woman Fatimah came from the inner room with word
that the child was born.
At that Israel was like a man distraught. He leapt up from the
table and faced full upon his guests, and cried, "Now you know what it
is; and now you know why you are bidden to this supper! You are here
to rejoice with me over my enemies! Drink! drink! Confusion to all
of them!" And he lifted a winecup and drank himself.
They were abashed before him, and tried to edge out of the patio
into the street; but he put his back to the passage, and faced them
again.
"You will not drink?" he said. "Then listen to me." He dashed
the winecup out of his hand, and it broke into fragments on the floor.
His laughter was gone, his face was aflame, and his voice rose to a
shrill cry. "You foretold the doom of God upon me, you brought me
low, you made me ashamed: but behold how the Lord has lifted me up!
You set your women to prophesy that God would not suffer me to raise
up children to be a reproach and a curse among my people; but God has
this day given me a son like the best of you. More than that--more
than that-- my son shall yet see--"
The slave woman was touching his arm. "It is a girl," she said; "a
girl!"
For a moment Israel stammered and paused. Then he cried, "No
matter! She shall see your own children fatherless, and with none to
show them mercy! She shall see the iniquity of their fathers
remembered against them! She shall see them beg their bread, and
seek it in desolate places! And now you can go! Go! go!"
He had stepped aside as he spoke, and with a sweep of his arm he
was driving them all out like sheep before him, dumbfounded and with
their eyes in the dust, when suddenly there was a low cry from the
inner room.
It was Ruth calling for her husband. Israel wheeled about and went
in to her hurriedly, and his enemies, by one impulse of evil instinct,
followed him and listened from the threshold.
Ruth's face was a face of fear, and her lips moved, but no voice
came from them.
And Israel said, "How is it with you, my dearest joy of my joy and
pride of my pride?"
Then Ruth lifted the babe from her bosom and said "The Lord has
counted my prayer to me as sin--look, see; the child is both dumb and
blind!"
At that word Israel's heart died within him, but he muttered out
of his dry throat, "No, no, never believe it!"
"True, true, it is true," she moaned; "the child has not uttered a
cry, and its eyelids have not blinked at the light."
"Never believe it, I say!" Israel growled, and he lifted the babe
in his arms to try it.
But when he held it to the fading light of the window which opened
upon the street where the woman called the prophetess had cursed him,
the eyes of the child did not close, neither did their pupils
diminish. Then his limbs began to tremble, so that the midwife took
the babe out of his arms and laid it again on its mother's bosom.
And Ruth wept over it, saying, "Even if it were a son never could
it serve in the synagogue! Never! Never!"
At that Israel began to curse and to swear. His enemies had now
pushed themselves into the chamber, and they cried, "Peace! Peace!"
And old Judah ben Lolo, the elder of the synagogue, grunted, and said,
"Is it not written that no one afflicted of God shall minister in His
temples?"
Israel stared around in silence into the faces about him, first
into the face of his wife, and then into the faces of his enemies whom
he had bidden. Then he fell to laughing hideously and crying, "What
matter? Every monkey is a gazelle to its mother!" But after that he
staggered, his knees gave way, he pitched half forward and half aside,
like a falling horse, and with a deep groan he fell with his face to
the floor.
The midwife and the slave lifted him up and moistened his lips with
water; but his enemies turned and left him, muttering among
themselves, "The Lord killeth and maketh alive, He bringeth low and
lifteth up, and into the pit that the evil man diggeth or another He
causeth his foot to slip."
Throughout Tetuan and the country round about Israel was now an
object of contempt. God had declared against him, God had brought him
low, God Himself had filled him with confusion. Then why should man
show him mercy?
But if he was despised he was still powerful. None dare openly
insult him. And, between their fear and their scorn of him, the
shifts of the rabble to give vent to their contempt were often
ludicrous enough. Thus, they would call their dogs and their asses
by his name, and the dogs would be the scabbiest in the streets, and
the asses the laziest in the market.
He would be caught in the crush of the traffic at the town gate or
at the gate of the Mellah, and while he stood aside to allow a line of
pack-mules to pass he would hear a voice from behind him crying
huskily, "Accursed old Israel! Get on home to your mother!" Then,
turning quickly round, he would find that close at his heels a negro
of most innocent countenance was cudgelling his donkey by that title.
He would go past the Saints' Houses in the public ways, and at the
sound of his footsteps the bleached and eyeless lepers who sat under
the white walls crying "Allah! Allah! Allah!" would suddenly change
their cry to "Arrah! Arrah! Arrah!" "Go on! Go on! Go on!"
He would walk across the Sok on Fridays, and hear shrieks and
peals of laughter, and see grinning faces with gleaming white teeth
turned in his direction, and he would know that the story-tellers
were mimicking his voice and the jugglers imitating his gestures.
His prosperity counted for nothing against the open brand of God's
displeasure. The veriest muck-worm in the market-place spat out at
sight of him. Moor and Jew, Arab and Berber--they all despised him!
Nevertheless, the disaster which had befallen his house had not
crushed him. It had brought out every fibre of his being, every
muscle of his soul. He had quarrelled with God by reason of it, and
his quarrel with God had made his quarrel with his fellow-man the
fiercer.
There was just one man in the town who found no offence in either
form of warfare. The more wicked the one and the more outrageous the
other, the better for his person.
It was the Governor of Tetuan. His name was El Arby, but he was
known as Ben Aboo, the son of his father. That father had been none
other than the late Sultan. Therefore Ben Aboo was a brother of Abd
er-Rahman, though by another mother, a negro slave. To be a Sultan's
brother in Morocco is not to be a Sultan's favourite, but a possible
aspirant to his throne. Nevertheless Ben Aboo had been made a Kaid, a
chief, in the Sultan's army, and eventually a commander-in-chief of
his cavalry. In that capacity he had led a raid for arrears of
tribute on the Beni Hasan, the Beni Idar, and the Wad Ras These
rebellious tribes inhabit the country near to Tetuan, and hence Ben
Aboo's attention had been first directed to that town. When he had
returned from his expedition he offered the Sultan fifteen thousand
dollars for the place of its Basha or Governor, and promised him
thirty thousand dollars a year as tribute. The Sultan took his money,
and accepted his promise. There was a Basha at Tetuan already, but
that was a trifling difficulty. The good man was summoned to the
Sultan's presence, accused of appropriating the Shereefian tributes,
stripped of all he had, and cast into prison.
That was how Ben Aboo had become Governor of Tetuan, and the story
of how Israel had become his informal Administrator of Affairs is no
less curious. At first Ben Aboo seemed likely to lose by his dubious
transaction. His new function was partly military and partly civil.
He was a valiant soldier--the black blood of his slave-mother had
counted for so much; but he was a bad administrator--he could neither
read nor write nor reckon figures. In this dilemma his natural
colleague would have been his Khaleefa, his deputy, Ali bin Jillool,
but because this man had been the deputy of his predecessor also, he
could not trust him. He had two other immediate subordinates, his
Commander of Artillery and his Commander of Infantry, but neither of
them could spell the letters of his name. Then there was his Taleb
the Adel, his scribe the notary, Hosain ben Hashem, styled Haj,
because he had made the pilgrimage to Mecca, but he was also the Imam,
or head of the Mosque, and the wily Ben Aboo foresaw the danger of
some day coming into collision with the religious sentiment of his
people. Finally, there was the Kadi, Mohammed ben Arby, but the judge
was an official outside his jurisdiction, and he wanted a man who
should be under his hand. That was the combination of circumstances
whereby Israel came to Tetuan.
Israel's first years in his strange office had satisfied his master
entirely. He had carried the Basha's seal and acted for him in all
affairs of money. The revenues had risen to fifty thousand dollars,
so that the Basha had twenty thousand to the good. Then Ben Aboo's
ambition began to override itself. He started an oil-mill, and
wanted Israel to select a hundred houses owned by rich men, that he
might compel each house to take ten kollahs of oil--an extravagant
quantity, at seven dollars for each kollah--an exorbitant price.
Israel had refused. "It is not just," he had said.
Other expedients for enlarging his revenue Ben Aboo had suggested,
but Israel had steadfastly resisted all of them. Sometimes the
Governor had pretended that he had received an order from the Sultan
to impose a gross and wicked tax, but Israel's answer had been the
same. "There is no evil in the world but injustice," he had said. "Do
justice, and you do all that God can ask or man expect."
For such opposition to the will of the Basha any other person would
have been cast into a damp dungeon at night, and chained in the hot
sun by day. Israel was still necessary. So Ben Aboo merely longed
for the dawn of that day whereon he should need him no more.
But since the disaster which had befallen Israel's house everything
had undergone a change. It was now Israel himself who suggested
dubious means of revenue. There was no device of a crafty brain for
turning the very air itself into money--ransoms, promissory notes, and
false judgments--but Israel thought of it. Thus he persuaded the
Governor to send his small currency to the Jewish shops to be changed
into silver dollars at the rate of nine ducats to the dollar, when a
dollar was worth ten in currency. And after certain of the
shopkeepers, having changed fifty thousand dollars at that rate, fled
to the Sultan to complain, Israel advised that their debtors should be
called together, their debts purchased, and bonds drawn up and
certified for ten times the amounts of them. Thus a few were banished
from their homes in fear of imprisonment, many were sorely harassed,
and some were entirely ruined.
It was a strange spectacle. He whom the rabble gibed at in the
public streets held the fate of every man of them in his hand. Their
dogs and their asses might bear his name, but their own lives and
liberty must answer to it.
Israel looked on at all with an equal mind, neither flinching at
his indignities nor glorying in his power. He beheld the wreck of
families without remorse, and heard the wail of women and the cry of
children without a qualm. Neither did he delight in the sufferings of
them that had derided him. His evil impulse was a higher matter--his
faith in justice had been broken up. He had been wrong. There was no
such thing as justice in the world, and there could, therefore, be no
such thing as injustice. There was no thing but the blind swirl of
chance, and the wild scramble for life. The man had quarrelled with
God.
But Israel's heart was not yet dead. There was one place, where
he who bore himself with such austerity towards the world was a man
of great tenderness. That place was his own home. What he saw there
was enough to stir the fountains of his being--nay, to exhaust them,
and to send him abroad as a river-bed that is dry.
In that first hour of his abasement, after he had been confounded
before the enemies whom he had expected to confound, Israel had
thought of himself, but Ruth's unselfish heart had even then thought
only of the babe.
The child was born blind and dumb and deaf. At the feast of life
there was no place left for it. So Ruth turned her face from it to
the wall, and called on God to take it.
"Take it!" she cried--"take it! Make haste, O God, make haste and
take it!"
But the child did not die. It lived and grew strong. Ruth herself
suckled it, and as she nourished it in her bosom her heart yearned
over it, and she forgot the prayer she had prayed concerning it. So,
little by little, her spirit returned to her, and day by day her soul
deceived her, and hour by hour an angel out of heaven seemed to come
to her side and whisper "Take heart of hope, O Ruth! God does not
afflict willingly. Perhaps the child is not blind, perhaps it is not
deaf, perhaps it is not dumb. Who shall ye say? Wait and see!"
And, during the first few months of its life, Ruth could see no
difference in her child from the children of other women. Sometimes
she would kneel by its cradle and gaze into the flower-cup of its eye,
an the eye was blue and beautiful, and there was nothing to say that
the little cup was broken, and the little chamber dark. And sometimes
she would look at the pretty shell of its ear, and the ear was round
and full as a shell on the shore, and nothing told her that the voice
of the sea was not heard in it, and that all within was silence.
So Ruth cherished her hope in secret, and whispered her heart and
said, "It is well, all is well with the child. She will look upon my
face and see it, and listen to my voice and hear it, and her own
little tongue will yet speak to me, and make me very glad." And then
an ineffable serenity would spread over her face and transfigure it.
But when the time was come that a child's eyes, having grown
familiar with the light, should look on its little hands, and stare at
its little fingers, and clutch at its cradle, and gaze about in a
peaceful perplexity at everything, still the eyes of Ruth's child did
not open in seeing, but lay idle and empty. And when the time was
ripe that a child's ears should hear from hour to hour the sweet
babble of a mother's love, and its tongue begin to give back the words
in lisping sounds, the ear of Ruth's child heard nothing, and its
tongue was mute.
Then Ruth's spirit sank, but still the angel out of heaven seemed
to come to her, and find her a thousand excuses, and say, "Wait,
Ruth; only wait, only a little longer."
So Ruth held back her tears, and bent above her babe again, and
watched for its smile that should answer to her smile, and listened
for the prattle of its little lips. But never a sound as of speech
seemed to break the silence between the words that trembled from her
own tongue, and never once across her baby's face passed the light of
her tearful smile. It was a pitiful thing to see her wasted pains,
and most pitiful of all for the pains she was at to conceal them.
Thus, every day at midday she would carry her little one into the
patio, and watch if its eyes should blink in the sunshine; but if
Israel chanced to come upon her then, she would drop her head and say,
"How sweet the air is to-day, and how pleasant to sit in the sun!"
"So it is," he would answer, "so it is."
Thus, too, when a bird was singing from the fig-tree that grew in
the court, she would catch up her child and carry it close, and watch
if its ears should hear; but if Israel saw her, she would laugh--a
little shrill laugh like a cry--and cover her face in confusion.
"How merry you are, sweetheart," he would say, and then pass into
the house.
For a time Israel tried to humour her, seeming not to see what he
saw, and pretending not to hear what he heard. But every day his
heart bled at sight of her, and one day he could bear up no longer,
for his very soul had sickened, and he cried, "Have done, Ruth!--for
mercy's sake, have done! The child is a soul in chains, and a spirit
in prison. Her eyes are darkness, like the tomb's, and her ears are
silence, like the grave's. Never will she smile to her mother's
smile, or answer to her father's speech. The first sound she will hear
will be the last trump, and the first face she will see will be the
face of God."
At that, Ruth flung herself down and burst into a flood of tears.
The hope that she had cherished was dead. Israel could comfort her
no longer. The fountain of his own heart was dry. He drew a long
breath, and went away to his bad work at the Kasbah.
The child lived and thrived. They had called her Naomi, as they
had agreed to do before she was born, though no name she knew of
herself, and a mockery it seemed to name her. At four years of age
she was a creature of the most delicate beauty. Notwithstanding her
Jewish parentage, she was fair as the day and fresh as the dawn. And
if her eyes were darkness, there was light within her soul; and if her
ears were silence, there was music within her heart. She was brighter
than the sun which she could not see, and sweeter than the songs which
she could not hear. She was joyous as a bird in its narrow cage, and
never did she fret at the bars which bound her. And, like the bird
that sings at midnight, her cheery soul sang in its darkness.
Only one sound seemed ever to come from her little lips, and it was
the sound of laughter. With this she lay down to sleep at night, and
rose again in the morning. She laughed as she combed her hair, and
laughed again as she came dancing out of her chamber at dawn.
She had only one sentinel on the outpost of her spirit, and that
was the sense of touch and feeling. With this she seemed to know the
day from the night, and when the sun was shining and when the sky was
dark. She knew her mother, too, by the touch of her fingers, and her
father by the brushing of his beard. She knew the flowers that grew
in the fields outside the gate of the town, and she would gather them
in her lap, as other children did, and bring them home with her in
her hands. She seemed almost to know their colours also, for the
flowers which she would twine in her hair were red, and the white were
those which she would lay on her bosom. And truly a flower she was of
herself, whereto the wind alone could whisper, and only the sun could
speak aloud.
Sweet and touching were the efforts she sometimes made to cling to
them that were about her. Thus her heart was the heart of a child,
and she knew no delight like to that of playing with other children.
But her father's house was under a ban; no child of any neighbour in
Tetuan was allowed to cross its threshold, and, save for the children
whom she met in the fields when she walked there by her mother's hand,
no child did she ever meet.
Ruth saw this, and then, for the first time, she became conscious
of the isolation in which she had lived since her marriage with
Israel. She herself had her husband for companion and comrade, but
her little Naomi was doubly and trebly alone--first, alone as a child
that is the only child of her parents; again, alone as a child whose
parents are cut off from the parents of other children; and yet again,
once more, alone as a child that is blind and dumb.
But Israel saw it also, and one day he brought home with him from
the Kasbah a little black boy with a sweet round face and big innocent
white eyes which might have been the eyes of an angel. The boy's name
was Ali, and he was four years old. His father had killed his mother
for infidelity and neglect of their child, and, having no one to buy
him out of prison, he had that day been executed. Then little Ali had
been left alone in the world, and so Israel had taken him.
Ruth welcomed the boy, and adopted him. He had been born a
Mohammedan, but secretly she brought him up as a Jew. And for some
years thereafter no difference did she make between him and her own
child that other eyes could see. They ate together, they walked
abroad together, they played together, they slept together, and the
little black head of the boy lay with the fair head of the girl on the
same white pillow.
Strange and pathetic were the relations between these little exiles
of humanity I One knew not whether to laugh or cry at them. First, on
Ali's part, a blank wonderment that when he cried to Naomi, "Come!"
she did not hear, when he asked "Why?" she did not answer; and when he
said "Look!" she did not see, though her blue eyes seemed to gaze full
into his face. Then, a sort of amused bewilderment that her little
nervous fingers were always touching his arms and his hands, and his
neck and his throat. But long before he had come to know that Naomi
was not as he was, that Nature had not given her eyes to see as he
saw, and ears to hear as he heard, and a tongue to speak as he spoke,
Nature herself had overstepped the barriers that divided her from him.
He found that Naomi had come to understand him, whatever in his
little way he did, and almost whatever in his little way he said. So
he played with her as he would have played with any other playmate,
laughing with her, calling to her, and going through his foolish
little boyish antics before her. Nevertheless, by some mysterious
knowledge of Nature's own teaching, he seemed to realise that it was
his duty to take care of her. And when the spirit and the mischief in
his little manly heart would prompt him to steal out of the house, and
adventure into the streets with Naomi by his side, he would be found
in the thick of the throng perhaps at the heels of the mules and
asses, with Naomi's hand locked in his hand, trying to push the great
creatures of the crowd from before her, and crying in his brave little
treble, "Arrah!" "Ar-rah!" "Ar-r-rah!"
As for Naomi, the coming of little black Ali was a wild delight to
her. Whatever Ali did, that would she do also. If he ran she would
run; if he sat she would sit; and meanwhile she would laugh with a
heart of glee, though she heard not what he said, and saw not what he
did, and knew not what he meant. At the time of the harvest, when
Ruth took them out into the fields, she would ride on Ali's back, and
snatch at the ears of barley and leap in her seat and laugh, yet
nothing would she see of the yellow corn, and nothing would she hear
of the song of the reapers, and nothing would she know of the cries
of Ali, who shouted to her while he ran, forgetting in his playing
that she heard him not. And at night, when Ruth put them to bed in
their little chamber, and Ali knelt with his face towards Jerusalem,
Naomi would kneel beside him with a reverent air, and all her laughter
would be gone. Then, as he prayed his prayer, her little lips would
move as if she were praying too, and her little hands would be clasped
together, and her little eyes would be upraised.
"God bless father, and mother, and Naomi, and everybody," the black
boy would say.
And the little maid would touch his hands and hi throat, and pass
her fingers over his face from his eyelids to his lips, and then do
as he did, and in her silence seem to echo him.
Pretty and piteous sights! Who could look on them without tears?
One thing at least was clear if the soul of this child was in prison,
nevertheless it was alive; and if it was in chains, nevertheless it
could not die, but was immortal and unmaimed and waited only for the
hour when it should be linked to other souls, soul to soul in the
chains of speech. But the years went on, and Naomi grew in beauty and
increased in sweetness, but no angel came down to open the darkened
windows of her eyes, and draw aside the heavy curtains of her ears.
For all her joy and all her prettiness, Naomi was a burden which
only love could bear. To think of the girl by day, and to dream of
her by night, never to sit by her without pity of her helplessness,
and never to leave her without dread of the mischances that might so
easily befall, to see for her, to hear for her, to speak for her,
truly the tyranny of the burden was terrible.
Ruth sank under it. Through seven years she was eyes of the
child's eyes, and ears of her ears, and tongue of her tongue. After
that her own sight became dim, and her hearing faint. It was almost
as if she had spent them on Naomi in the yearning of dove and pity.
Soon afterwards her bodily strength failed her also, and then she
knew that her time had come, and that she was to lay down her burden
for ever. But her burden had become dear, and she clung to it. She
could not look upon the child and think it, that she, who had spent
her strength for her from the first, must leave her now to other love
and tending. So she betook herself to an upper room, and gave strict
orders to Fatimah and Habeebah that Naomi was to be kept from her
altogether, that sight of the child's helpless happy face might tempt
her soul no more.
And there in her death-chamber Israel sat with her constantly,
settling his countenance steadfastly, and coming and going softly. He
was more constant than a slave, and more tender than a woman. His love
was great, but also he was eating out his big heart with remorse. The
root of his trouble was the child. He never talked of her, and
neither did Ruth dwell upon her name. Yet they thought of little else
while they sat together.
And even if they had been minded to talk of the child, what had
they to say of her? They had no memories to recall, no sweet childish
sayings, no simple broken speech, no pretty lisp--they had nothing to
bring back out of any harvest of the past of all the dear delicious
wealth that lies stored in the treasure-houses of the hearts of happy
parents. That way everything was a waste. Always, as Israel entered
her room, Ruth would say, "How is the child?" And always Israel would
answer, "She is well." But, if at that moment Naomi's laughter came
up to them from the patio, where she played with Ali, they would cover
their faces and be silent.
It was a melancholy parting. No one came near them--neither Moor
nor Jew, neither Rabbi nor elder. The idle women of the Mellah would
sometimes stand outside in the street and look up at their house,
knowing that the black camel of death was kneeling at their gate.
Other company they had none. In such solitude they passed four weeks,
and when the time of the end seemed near, Israel himself read aloud
the prayer for the dying, the prayer Shema' Yisrael, and Ruth repeated
the words of it after him.
Meantime, while Ruth lay in the upper chamber little Naomi sported
and played in the patio with Ali, but she missed her mother
constantly. This she made plain by many silent acts of helpless love
that knew no way to speak aloud. Thus she would lay flowers on the
seats where her mother had used to sit, and, if at night she found
them untouched where she had left them, her little face would fall,
and her laughter die off her lips; but if they had withered and some
one had cast them into the oven, she would laugh again and fetch other
flowers from the fields, until the house would be full of the odour of
the meadow and the scent of the hill.
And well they knew, who looked upon her then, whom she missed, and
what the question was that halted on her tongue; yet how could they
answer her? There was no way to do that until she herself knew how to
ask.
But this she did on a day near to the end. It was evening, and
she was being put to bed by Habeebah, and had just risen from her
innocent pantomime of prayer beside Ali, when Israel, coming from
Ruth's chamber, entered the children's room. Then, touching with her
hand the seat whereon Ruth had used to sit, Naomi laid down her head
on the pillow, and then rose and lay down again, and rose yet again
and rose yet again lay down, and then came to where Israel was and
stood before him. And at that Israel knew that the soul of his
helpless child had asked him, as plainly as words of the tongue can
speak, how often she should lie to sleep at night and rise to play in
the morning before her mother came to her again.
The tears gushed into his eyes, and he left the children and
returned to his wife's chamber.
"Ruth," he cried, "call the child to you, I beseech you!"
"No, no, no!" cried Ruth.
"Let her come to you and touch you and kiss you, and be with you
before it is too late," said Israel. "She misses you, and fills the
house with flowers for you. It breaks my heart to see her."
"It will break mine also," said Ruth.
But she consented that Naomi should be called, and Fatimah was sent
to fetch her.
The sun was setting, and through the window which looked out to the
west, over the river and the orange orchards and the palpitating
plains beyond, its dying rays came into the room in a bar of golden
light. It fell at that instant on Ruth's face, and she was white and
wasted. And through the other window of the room, which looked out
over the Mellah into the town, and across the market-place to the
mosque and to the battery on the hill, there came up from the
darkening streets below the shuffle of the feet of a crowd and the
sound of many voices. The Jews of Tetuan were trooping back to their
own little quarter, that their Moorish masters might lock them into it
for the night.
Naomi was already in bed, and Fatimah brought her away in her
nightdress. She seemed to know where she was to be taken, for she
laughed as Fatimah held her by the hand, and danced as she was led to
her mother's chamber. But when she was come to the door of it,
suddenly her laughter ceased, and her little face sobered, as if
something in the close abode of pain had troubled the senses that were
left to her.
It is, perhaps, the most touching experience of the deaf and blind
that no greeting can ever welcome them. When Naomi stood like a
little white vision at the threshold of the room, Israel took her hand
in silence, and drew her up to the pillow of the bed where her mother
rested, and in silence Ruth brought the child to her bosom.
For a moment Naomi seemed to be perplexed. She touched her
mother's fingers, and they were changed, for they had grown thin and
long. Then she felt her face, and that was changed also, for it was
become withered and cold. And, missing the grasp of one and the smile
of the other, she first turned her little head aside as one that
listens closely, and then gently withdrew herself from the arms that
held her.
Ruth had watched her with eyes that overflowed, and now she burst
into sobs outright.
"The child does not know me!" she cried. "Did I not tell you it
would break my heart?"
"Try her again," said Israel; "try her again."
Ruth devoured her tears, and called on Fatimah to bring the child
back to her side. Then, loosening the necklace that was about her own
neck, she bound it about the neck of Naomi, and also the bracelets
that were on her wrists she unclasped and clasped them on the wrists
of the child. This she did that Naomi might remember the hands that
had been kind to her always. But when the child felt the ornaments
she seemed only to know, by the quick instinct of a girl, that she was
decked out bravely, and giving no thought to Ruth, who waited and
watched for the grasp of recognition and the kiss of joy, she withdrew
herself again from her mother's arms, and bounded into the middle of
the room, and suddenly began to laugh and to dance.
The sun's dying light, which had rested on Ruth's wasted face, now
glistened and sparkled on the jewels of the child, and glowed on her
blind eyes, and gleamed on her fair hair, and reddened her white
nightdress, while she danced and laughed to her mother's death.
Nothing did the child know of death, any more than Adam himself
before Abel was slain, and it was almost as if a devil out of hell had
entered into her innocent heart and possessed it, that she might make
a mock of the dying of the dearest friend she had known on earth.
On and on she danced, to no measure and no time, and not with a
child's uncertain step which breaks down at motion as its tongue
breaks down at speech, but wildly and deliriously. The room was
darkening fast, but still across the nether end, by the foot of the
bed, streamed the dull red bar of sunlight with the little red figure
leaping and prancing and laughing in the midst of it.
With an awful cry Ruth fell back on the pillow and turned her eyes
to the wall. The black woman dropped her head that she might not see.
And Israel covered his face and groaned in his tearless agony, "O
Lord God, long hast Thou chastised me with whips, and now I am
chastised with scorpions!"
Ruth recovered herself quickly. "Bring her to me again!" she
faltered; and once more Fatimah brought Naomi back to the bedside.
Then, embracing and kissing the child, and seeming to forget in the
torment of her trouble that Naomi could not hear her, she cried, "It's
your mother, Naomi! your mother, darling, though so sick and changed!
Don't you know her, Naomi? Your mother, your own mother, sweet one,
your dear mother who loves you so, and must leave you now and see you
no more!"
Now what it was in that wild plea that touched the consciousness
of the child at last, only God Himself can say. But first Naomi's
cheeks grew pale at the embrace of the arms that held her, and then
they reddened, and then her little nervous fingers grasped at Ruth's
hands again, and then her little lips trembled, and then, at length,
she flung herself along Ruth's bosom and nestled close in her embrace.
Ruth fell back on her pillow now with a cry of Joy; the black woman
stood and wept by the wall and Israel, unable to bear up his heart any
longer was melted and unmanned. The sun had gone down, and the room
was darkening rapidly, for the twilight in that land is short; the
streets were quiet, and the mooddin of the neighbouring minaret was
chanting in the silence, "God is great, God is great!"
After awhile the little one fell asleep at her mother's bosom, and,
seeing this, Fatimah would have lifted her away and carried her back
to her own bed; but Ruth said, "No; leave her, let me have her with me
while I may."
"No one shall take her from you," said Israel.
Then she gazed down at the child's face and said, "It is hard to
leave her and never once to have heard her voice."
"That is the bitterest cup of all," said Israel.
"I shall not return to her," said Ruth, "but she shall come to me,
and then, perhaps--who knows?--perhaps in the resurrection I shall
hear it."
Israel made no answer.
Ruth gazed down at the child again, and said, "My helpless darling!
Who will care for you when I am gone?"
"Rest, rest, and sleep!" said Israel.
"Ah, yes, I know," said Ruth. "How foolish of me! You are her
father, and you love her also. Yet promise me--promise--"
"For love and tending she shall never lack," said Israel. "And now
lie you still, my dearest; lie still and sleep."
She stretched out her hand to him. "Yes, that was what I meant,"
she said, and smiled. Then a shadow crossed her face in the gloom.
"But when I am gone," she said, "will Naomi ever know that her mother
who is dead had wronged her?"
"You have never wronged her," said Israel. "Have done, oh, have
done!"
"God punished us for our prayer, my husband," said Ruth.
"Peace, peace!" said Israel.
"But God is good," said Ruth, "and surely He will not afflict our
child much longer."
"Hush! Hush! You will awaken her," said Israel, not thinking what
he said. "Now lie still and sleep, dearest. You are tired also."
She lay quiet for a time, gazing, while the light remained, into
the face of the sleeping child, and listening, when the light failed,
to her gentle breathing. Then she babbled and crooned over her with
a childish joy. "Yes, yes, father is right, and mother must lie
quiet--very quiet, and so her little Naomi will sleep long--very long,
and wake happy and well in the morning. How bonny she will look! How
fresh and rosy!"
She paused a moment. Her laboured breathing came quick and fast.
"But shall I be here to see her? shall I?"
She paused again, and then, as though to banish thought, she began
to sing in a low voice that was like a moan. Presently her singing
ceased, and she spoke again, but this time in broken whispers.
"How soft and glossy her hair is! I wonder if Fatimah will
remember to wash it every day. She should twist it around her fingers
to keep it in pretty curls. . . . Oh, why did God make my child so
beautiful?. . . . Dear me, her morning frock wanted stitching at the
sleeves, it's a chance if Habeebah has seen to it. Then there's her
underclothing. . . . Will she be deaf and blind and dumb always? I
wonder if I shall see her when I. . . . They say that angels are
sent. . . . Yes, yes, that's it, when I am there--there--I will go
to God and say, 'O Lord! my little girl whom I have left behind, she
is. . . . You would never think, O Lord, how many things may happen
to one like her. Let me go--only let me watch over her--O Lord, let
me be her guar--'"
Her weakness had conquered her, and she was quiet at last. Israel
sat in silence by the post of the bed. His heart was surging itself
out of his choking breast. The black woman stood somewhere by the
wall. After a time Ruth seemed to awake as from sleep. She was in
great excitement.
"Israel, Israel!" she cried in a voice of joy, "I have seen a
vision. It was Naomi. She was no longer deaf and blind and dumb. She
was grown to be a woman, but I knew her instantly. Not a woman either,
but a young maiden, and so beautiful, so beautiful! Yes, and she could
see and hear and speak."
Israel thought Ruth had become delirious, and he tried to soothe
her, but her agitation was not to be overcome. "The Lord hath seen
our tears at last," she cried. "He has put our sin beneath His feet.
We are forgiven. It will be well with the child yet."
Israel did not try to gainsay her, and at sight and sound of her
joy, seeing it so beautiful, yet thinking it so vain, he could not
help at last but weep. Presently she became quiet again, and then
again, after a little while, she woke as from a sleep.
"I am ready now," she said in a whisper, "quite ready, sweet
Heaven, quite, quite ready now."
Then with her one free hand she felt in the darkness for Israel,
where he sat beside her, and touching his forehead she smoothed it,
and said very softly, "Farewell, my husband!"
And Israel answered her, "Farewell!"
"Good-night!" she whispered.
And Israel drew down her hand from his forehead to his lips and
sobbed, and said, "Good-night, beloved!"
Then she put her white lips to the child's blind eyes, and at that
moment the spirit of the Lord came to her, and the Lord took her, and
she died.
When lamps had been brought into the room, and Fatimah saw that
the end had come, she would have lifted Naomi from Ruth's bosom, but
the child awoke as she was being moved, and clasped her little fingers
about the dead mother's neck and covered the mouth with kisses. And
when she felt that the lips did not answer to her lips, and that the
arms which had held her did not hold her any longer, but fell away
useless, she clung the closer, and tears started to her eyes.
The people of Tetuan were not melted towards Israel by the depth
of his sorrow and the breadth of shadow that lay upon him. By noon of
the day following the night of Ruth's death, Israel knew that he was
to be left alone. It was a rule of the Mellah that on notice being
given of a death in their quarter, the clerk of the synagogue should
publish it at the first service thereafter, in order that a body of
men, called the Hebra Kadisha of Kabranim, the Holy Society of
Buriers, might straightway make arrangements for burial. Early
prayers had been held in the synagogue at eight o'clock that morning,
and no one had yet come near to Israel's house. The men of the Hebra
were going about their ordinary occupations. They knew nothing of
Ruth's death by official announcement. The clerk had not published
it. Israel remembered with bitterness that notice of it had not been
sent. Nevertheless, the fact was known throughout Tetuan. There was
not a water-carrier in the market-place but had taken it to each house
he called at, and passed it to every man he met. Little groups of idle
Jewish women had been many hours congregated in the streets outside,
talking of it in whispers and looking up at the darkened windows with
awe. But the synagogue knew nothing of it. Israel had omitted the
customary ceremony, and in that omission lay the advantage of his
enemies. He must humble himself and send to them. Until he did so
they would leave him alone.
Israel did not send. Never once since the birth of Naomi had he
crossed the threshold of the synagogue. He would not cross it now,
whether in body or in spirit. But he was still a Jew, with Jewish
customs, if he had lost the Jewish faith, and it was one of the
customs of the Jews that a body should be buried within twenty-four
hours, at farthest, from the time of death. He must do something
immediately. Some help must be summoned. What help could it be?
It was useless to think of the Muslimeen. No believer would lend a
hand to dig a grave for an unbeliever, or to make apparel for his
dead. It was just as idle to think of the Jews. If the synagogue knew
nothing of this burial, no Jew in the Mellah would be found so poor
that he would have need to know more. And of Christians of any sort
or condition there were none in all Tetuan.
The gall of Israel's heart rose to his throat. Was he to be left
alone with his dead wife? Did his enemies wish to see him howk out
her grave with his own hands? Or did they expect him to come to them
with bowed forehead and bended knee? Either way their reckoning was
a mistake. They might leave him terribly and awfully alone--alone in
his hour of mourning even as they had left him alone in his hour of
rejoicing, when he had married the dear soul who was dead. But his
strength and energy they should not crush: his vital and intellectual
force they should not wither away. Only one thing they could do to
touch him--they could shrivel up his last impulse of sweet human
sympathy. They were doing it now.
When Israel had put matters to himself so, he despatched a message
to the Governor at the Kasbah, and received, in answer, six State
prisoners, fettered in pairs, under the guard of two soldiers.
The burial took place within the limit of twenty-four hours
prescribed by Jewish custom. It was twilight when the body was
brought down from the upper room to the patio. There stood the coffin
on a trestle that had been raised for it on chairs standing back to
back. And there, too, sat Israel, with Naomi and little black Ali
beside him.
Israel's manner was composed; his face was as firm as a rock, and
his dress was more costly than Tetuan had ever seen him wear before.
Everything that related to the burial he had managed himself, down to
the least or poorest detail. But there was nothing poor about it in
the larger sense. Israel was a rich man now, and he set no value on
his riches except to subdue the fate that had first beaten him down
and to abash the enemies who still menaced him. Nothing was lacking
that money could buy in Tetuan to make this burial an imposing
ceremony. Only one thing it wanted--it wanted mourners, and it had but
one.
Unlike her father, little Naomi was visibly excited. She ran to
and fro, clutched at Israel's clothes and seemed to look into his
face, clasped the hand of little Ali and held it long as if in fear.
Whether she knew what work was afoot, and, if she knew it, by what
channel of soul or sense she learnt it, no man can say. That she was
conscious of the presence of many strangers is certain, and when the
men from the Kasbah brought the roll of white linen down the stairway,
with the two black women clinging to it, kissing its fringe and
wailing over it, she broke away from Israel and rushed in among them
with a startled cry, and her little white arms upraised. But whatever
her impulse, there was no need to check her. The moment she had
touched her mother she crept back in dread to her father's side.
"God be gracious to my father, look at that," whispered Fatimah.
"My child, my poor child," said Israel, "is there but one thing in
life that speaks to you? And is that death? Oh, little one, little
one!"
It was a strange procession which then passed out of the patio.
Four of the prisoners carried the coffin on their shoulders, walking
in pairs according to their fetters. They were gaunt and bony
creatures. Hunger had wasted their sallow cheeks, and the air of
noisome dungeons had sunken their rheumy eyes. Their clothes were
soiled rags, and over them, and concealing them down to their waists
and yet lower, hung the deep, rich, velvet pall, with its long silk
fringes. In front walked the two remaining prisoners, each bearing a
great plume in his left hand--the right arm, as well as the right leg,
being chained. On either side was a soldier, carrying a lighted
lantern, which burnt small and feeble in the twilight, and last of all
came Israel himself, unsupported and alone. Thus they passed through
the little crowd of idlers that had congregated at the door, through
the streets of the Mellah and out into the marketplace, and up the
narrow lane that leads to the chief town gate.
There is something in the very nature of power that demands homage,
and the people of Tetuan could not deny it to Israel. As the
procession went through the town they cleared a way for it, and they
were silent until it had gone. Within the gate of the Mellah, a
shocket was killing fowls and taking his tribute of copper coins, but
he stopped his work and fell back as the procession approached. A
blind beggar crouching at the other side of the gate was reciting
passages of the Koran, and two Arabs close at his elbow were wrangling
over a game at draughts which they were playing by the light of a
flare, but both curses and Koran ceased as the procession passed under
the arch. In the market-place a Soosi juggler was performing before a
throng of laughing people, and a story-teller was shrieking to the
twang of his ginbri; but the audience of the juggler broke up as the
procession appeared, and the ginbri of the storyteller was no more
heard. The hammering in the shops of the gunsmiths was stopped, and
the tinkling of the bells of the water-carriers was silenced. Mules
bringing wood from the country were dragged out of the path, and the
town asses, with their panniers full of street-filth, were drawn up by
the wall. From the market-place and out of the shops, out of the
houses and out of the mosque itself, the people came trooping in
crowds, and they made a long close line on either side of the course
which the procession must take. And through this avenue of onlookers
the strange company made its way--the two prisoners bearing the
plumes, the four others bearing the coffin, the two soldiers carrying
the lanterns, and Israel last of all, unsupported and alone. Nothing
was heard in the silence of the people but the tramp of the feet of
the six men, and the clank of their chains.
The light of the lanterns was on the faces of some of them, and
every one knew them for what they were. It was on the face of Israel
also, yet he did not flinch. His head was held steadily upward; he
looked neither to the right nor to the left, but strode firmly along.
The Jewish cemetery was outside the town walls, and before the
procession came to it the darkness had closed in. Its flat white
tombstones, all pointing toward Jerusalem, lay in the gloom like a
flock of sheep asleep among the grass. It had no gate but a gap in
the fence, and no fence but a hedge of the prickly pear and the aloe.
Israel had opened a grave for Ruth beside the grave of the old
rabbi her father. He had asked no man's permission to do so, but if
no one had helped at that day's business, neither had any one dared to
hinder. And when the coffin was set down by the grave-side no
ceremony did Israel forget and none did he omit. He repeated the
Kaddesh, and cut the notch in his kaftan; he took from his breast the
little linen bag of the white earth of the land of promise and laid it
under the head; he locked a padlock and flung away the key. Last of
all, when the body had been taken out of the coffin and lowered to its
long home, he stepped in after it, and called on one of the soldiers
to lend him a lantern. And then, kneeling at the foot of his dead
wife, he touched her with both his hands, and spoke these words in a
clear, firm voice, looking down at her where she lay in the veil that
she had used to wear in the synagogue, and speaking to her as though
she heard: "Ruth, my wife, my dearest, for the cruel wrong which I did
you long ago when I suffered you to marry me, being a man such as I
was, under the ban of my people, forgive me now, my beloved, and ask
God to forgive me also."
The dark cemetery, the six prisoners in their clanking irons, the
two soldiers with their lanterns the open grave, and this
strong-hearted man kneeling within it, that he might do his last duty,
according to the custom of his race and faith, to her whom he had
wronged and should meet no more until the resurrection itself reunited
them! The traffic of the streets had begun again by this time, and
between the words which Israel had spoken the low hum of many voices
had come over the dark town walls.
The six prisoners went back to the Kasbah with joyful hearts, for
each carried with him a paper which procured his freedom on the day
following. But Israel returned to his home with a soured and darkened
mind. As he had plucked his last handful of the grass, and flung it
over his shoulder, saying, "They shall spring in the cities as the
grass in the earth," he had asked himself what it mattered to him
though all the world were peopled, now that she, who had been all the
world to him, was dead. God had left him as a lonely pilgrim in a
dreary desert. Only one glimpse of human affection had he known as a
man, and here it was taken from him for ever.
And when he remembered Naomi, he quarrelled with God again. She
was a helpless exile among men, a creature banished from all human
intercourse, a living soul locked in a tabernacle of flesh. Was it a
good God who had taken the mother from such a child--the child from
such a mother? Israel was heart-smitten, and his soul blasphemed. It
was not God but the devil that ruled the world. It was not justice
but evil that governed it.
Thus did this outcast man rebel against God, thinking of the
child's loss and of his own; but nevertheless by the child itself he
was yet to be saved from the devil's snare, and the ways wherein this
sweet flower, fresh from God's hand, wrought upon his heart to redeem
it were very strange and beautiful.
The promise which Israel made to Ruth at her death, that Naomi
should not lack for love and tending, he faithfully fulfilled. From
that time forward he became as father and mother both to the child.
At the outset of his charge he made a survey of her condition, and
found it more terrible than imagination of the mind could think or
words of the tongue express. It was easy to say that she was deaf and
dumb and blind, but it was hard to realise what so great an affliction
implied. It implied that she was a little human sister standing close
to the rest of the family of man, yet very far away from them. She
was as much apart as if she had inhabited a different sphere. No human
sympathy could reach her in joy or pain and sorrow. She had no part to
play in life. In the midst of a world of light she was in a land of
darkness, and she was in a world of silence in the midst of a land of
sweet sounds. She was a living and buried soul.
And of that soul itself what did Israel know? He knew that it had
memory, for Naomi had remembered her mother; and he knew that it had
love, for she had pined for Ruth, and clung to her. But what were
love and memory without sight and speech? They were no more than a
magnet locked in a casket--idle and useless to any purposes of man or
the world.
Thinking of this, Israel realised for the first time how awful was
the affliction of his motherless girl. To be blind was to be
afflicted once, but to be both blind and deaf was not only to be
afflicted twice, but twice ten thousand times, and to be blind and
deaf and dumb was not merely to be afflicted thrice, but beyond all
reckonings of human speech.
For though Naomi had been blind, yet, if she could have had
hearing, her father might have spoken with her, and if she had sorrows
he must have soothed them, and if she had joys he must have shared
them, and in this beautiful world of God, so full of things to look
upon and to love, he must have been eyes of her eyes that could not
see. On the other hand, though Naomi had been deaf, yet if she could
have had sight her father might have held intercourse with her by the
light of her eyes, and if she felt pain he must have seen it, and if
she had found pleasure he must have known it, and what man is, and
what woman is, and what the world and what the sea and what the sky,
would have been as an open book for her to read. But, being blind and
deaf together, and, by fault of being deaf, being dumb as well, what
word was to describe the desolation of her state, the blank void of
her isolation--cut off, apart, aloof, shut in, imprisoned, enchained,
a soul without communion with other souls: alive, and yet dead?
Thus, realising Naomi's condition in; the deep infirmity of her
nature, Israel set himself to consider how he could reach her darkened
and silent soul. And first he tried to learn what good gifts were
left to her, that he might foster them to her advantage and nourish
them to his own great comfort and joy. Yet no gift whatever could he
find in her but the one gift only whereof he had known from the
beginning-- the gift of touch and feeling. With this he must make her
to see, or else her light should always be darkness, and with this he
must make her to hear, or silence should be her speech for ever.
Then he remembered that during his years in England he had heard
strange stories of how the dumb had been made to speak though they
could not hear, and the blind and deaf to understand and to answer. So
he sent to England for many books written on the treatment of these
children of affliction, and when they were come he pondered them
closely and was thrilled by the marvellous works they described. But
when he came to practise the precepts they had given him, his spirits
flagged, for the impediments were great. Time after time he tried,
and failed always, to touch by so much as one shaft of light the
hidden soul of the child through its tenement of flesh and blood.
Neither the simplest thought nor the poorest element of an idea found
any way to her mind, so dense were the walls of the prison that
encompassed it. "Yes" was a mystery that could not at first be
revealed to her, and "No" was a problem beyond her power to apprehend.
Smiles and frowns were useless to teach her. No discipline could be
addressed to her mind or heart. Except mere bodily restraint, no
control could be imposed upon her. She was swayed by her impulses
alone.
Israel did not despair. If he was broken down today he
strengthened his hands for tomorrow. At length he had got so far,
after a world of toil and thought, that Naomi knew when he patted her
head that it was for approval, and when he touched her hand it was for
assent. Then he stopped very suddenly. His hope had not drooped, and
neither had his energy failed, but the conviction had fastened upon
him that such effort in his case must be an offence against Heaven.
Naomi was not merely an infirm creature from the left hand of Nature;
she was an afflicted being from the right hand of God. She was a
living monument of sin that was not her own. It was useless to go
farther. The child must be left where God had placed her.
But meanwhile, if Naomi lacked the senses of the rest of the human
kind, she seemed to communicate with Nature by other organs than they
possessed. It was as if the spiritual world itself must have taught
her, and from that source alone could she have imbibed her power. To
tell of all she could do to guide her steps, and to minister to her
pleasures, and to cherish her affections, would be to go beyond the
limit of belief. Truly it seemed as if Naomi, being blind with her
bodily eyes, could yet look upon a light that no one else could see,
and, being deaf with her bodily ears, could yet listen to voices that
no one else could hear.
Thus, if she came skipping through the corridor of the patio, she
knew when any one approached her, for she would hold out her hands and
stop. Nay; but she knew also who it would be as well as if her eyes
or ears had taught her; for always, if it was her father, she reached
out her hands to take his left hand in both of hers, and then she
pressed it against her cheek; and always, if it was little Ali, she
curved her arms to encircle his neck; and always, if it was Fatimah,
she leapt up to her bosom; and always, if it was Habeebah, she passed
her by. Did she go with Ali into the streets, she knew the Mellah
gate from the gate of the town, and the narrow lanes from the open
Sok. Did she pass the lofty mosque in the market-place, she knew it
from the low shops that nestled under and behind and around. Did a
troop of mules and camels come near her, she knew them from a crowd of
people; and did she pass where two streets crossed, she would stand
and face both ways.
And as the years grew she came to know all places within and around
Tetuan, the town of the Moors and the Mellah of the Jews, the Kasbah
and the narrow lane leading up to it, the fort on the hill and the
river under the town walls, the mountains on either side of the
valley, and even some of their rocky gorges. She could find her way
among them all without help or guidance, and no control could any one
impose upon her to keep her out of the way of harm. While Ali was a
little fellow he was her constant companion, always ready for any
adventure that her unquiet heart suggested; but when he grew to be a
boy, and was sent to school every day early and late, she would fare
forth alone save for a tiny white goat which her father had bought to
be another playfellow.
And because feeling was sight to her, and touch was hearing, and
the crown of her head felt the winds of the heavens and the soles of
her feet felt the grass of the fields, she loved best to go bareheaded
whether the sun was high or the air was cool, and barefooted also,
from the rising of the morning until the coming of the stars. So,
casting off her slippers and the great straw hat which a Jewish maiden
wears, and clad in her white woollen shawl, wrapped loosely about her
in folds of airy grace, and with the little goat going before her,
though she could neither see nor hear it, she would climb the hill
beyond the battery, and stand on the summit, like a spirit poised in
air. She could see nothing of the green valley then stretched before
her, or of the white town lying below, with its domes and minarets,
but she seemed to exult in her lofty place, and to drink new life from
the rush of mighty winds about her. Then coming back to the dale, she
would seem, to those who looked up at her, with fear and with awe, to
leap as the goat leapt in the rocky places; and as a bird sweeps over
the grass with wings outstretched, so with her arms spread out, and
her long fair hair flying loose, she would sweep down the hill, as
though her very tiptoes did not touch it.
By what power she did these things no man could tell, except it
were the power of the spiritual world itself; but the distemper of the
mind, which loved such dangers, increased upon her as she grew from a
child into a maid, and it found new ways of strangeness. Thus, in the
spring, when the rain fell heavily, or in the winter, when the great
winds were abroad, or in the summer, when the lightning lightened and
the thunder thundered, her restless spirit seemed to be roused to
sympathetic tumults, and if she could escape the eyes that watched her
she would run and race in the tempest, and her eyes would be aglitter,
and laughter would be on her lips. Then Israel himself would go out
to find her, and, having found her in the pelting storm without
covering on her head or shoes on her feet, he would fetch her home by
the hand, and as they passed through the streets together his forehead
would be bowed and his eyes bent down.
But it was not always that Naomi made her father ashamed. More
often her joyful spirit cheered him, for above all things else she was
a creature of joy. A circle of joy seemed to surround her always. Her
heart in its darkness was full of radiance. As she grew her
comeliness increased, though this was strange and touching in her
beauty, that her face did not become older with her years, but was
still the face of a child, with a child's expression of sweetness
through the bloom and flush of early maidenhood. Her love of flowers
increased also, and the sense of smell seemed to come to her, for she
filled the house with all fragrant flowers in their season, twining
them in wreaths about the white pillars of the patio, and binding them
in rings around the brown water-jars that stood in it. And with the
girl's expanding nature her love of dress increased as well; but it
was not a young maid's love of lovely things; it was a wild passion
for light, loose garments that swayed and swirled in native grace
about her. Truly she was a spirit of joy and gladness. She was happy
as a day in summer, and fresh as a dewy morning in spring. The ripple
of her laughter was like sunshine. A flood of sunshine seemed to
follow in the air wheresoever she went. And certainly for Israel, her
father, she was as a sunbeam gathering sunshine into his lonely house.
Nevertheless, the sunbeam had its cloud-shapes of gloom, and if
Israel in his darker hours hungered for more human company, and wished
that the little playfellow of the angels which had come down to his
dwelling could only be his simple human child, he sometimes had his
wish, and many throbs of anguish with it. For often it happened, and
especially at seasons when no winds were stirring, and blank peace and
a doleful silence haunted the air, that Naomi would seem to fall into
a sick longing from causes that were beyond Israel's power to fathom.
Then her sweet face would sadden, and her beautiful blind eyes would
fill, and her pretty laughter would echo no more through the house.
And sometimes, in the dead of the night, she would rise from her bed
and go through the dark corridors, for darkness and light were as one
to her, until she came to Israel's room, and he would awake from his
sleep to find her, like a little white vision, standing by his
bedside. What she wanted there he could never know, for neither had
he power to ask nor she to answer, whether she were sick or in pain,
or whether in her sleep she had seen a face from the invisible world,
and heard a voice that called her away, or whether her mother's arms
had seemed to be about her once again and then to be torn from her
afresh, and she had come to him on awakening in her trouble, not
knowing what it is to dream, but thinking all evil dreams to be true
fact and new sorrow. So, with a sigh, he would arise and light his
lamp and lead her back to her bed, and more scalding than the tears
that would be standing in Naomi's eyes would be the hot drops that
would gush into his own.
"My poor darling," he would say, "can you not tell me your trouble,
that I may comfort you? No, no, she cannot tell me, and I cannot
comfort her. My darling, my darling."
Most of all when such things befell would Israel long for some
miracle out of heaven to find a way to the little maiden's mind that
she might ask and answer and know, yet he dared not to pray for it,
for still greater than his pity for the child was his fear of the
wrath of God. And out of this fear there came to him at length an
awful and terrible thought: though so severed on earth, his child and
he, yet before the bar of judgment they would one day be brought
together, and then how should it stand with her soul?
Naomi knew nothing of God, having no way of speech with man. Would
God condemn her for that, and cast her out for ever? No, no, no! God
would not ask her for good works in the land of silence, and for
labour in the land of night. She had no eyes to see God's beautiful
world, and no ears to hear His holy word. God had created her so, and
He would not destroy what He had made. Far rather would He look with
love and pity on His little one, so long and sorely tried on earth,
and send her at last to be a blessed saint in heaven.
Israel tried to comfort himself so, but the effort was vain. He
was a Jew to the inmost fibre of his being, and he answered himself
out of his own mouth that it was his own sinful wish, and not God's
will, that had sent Naomi into the world as she was. Then, on the day
of the great account, how should he answer to her for her soul?
Visions stood up before him of endless retribution for the soul
that knew not God. These were the most awful terrors of his
sleepless nights, but at length peace came to him, for he saw his path
of duty. It was his duty to Naomi that he should tell her of God and
reveal the word of the Lord to her! What matter if she could not hear?
Though she had senses as the sands of the seashore, yet in the way of
light the Lord alone could lead her. What matter though she could not
see? The soul was the eye that saw God, and with bodily eyes had no
man seen Him.
So every day thereafter at sunset Israel took Naomi by the hand and
led her to an upper room, the same wherein her mother died, and,
fetching from a cupboard of the wall the Book of the Law, he read to
her of the commandments of the Lord by Moses, and of the Prophets,
and of the Kings. And while he read Naomi sat in silence at his feet,
with his one free hand in both of her hands, clasped close against
her cheek.
What the little maid in her darkness thought of this custom, what
mystery it was to her and wherefore, only the eye that looks into
darkness could see; but it was so at length that as soon as the sun
had set--for she knew when the sun was gone--Naomi herself would take
her father by the hand, and lead him to the upper room, and fetch the
book to his knees.
And sometimes, as Israel read, an evil spirit would seem to come to
him, and make a mock at him, and say, "The child is deaf and hears
not--go read your book in the tombs!" But he only hardened his neck
and laughed proudly. And, again, sometimes the evil spirit seemed to
say, "Why waste yourself in this misspent desire? The child is buried
while she is still alive, and who shall roll away the stone?" But
Israel only answered, "It is for the Lord to do miracles, and the Lord
is mighty."
So, great in his faith, Israel read to Naomi night after night,
and when his spirit was sore of many taunts in the day his voice
would be hoarse, and he would read the law which says, "_Thou shalt
not curse the deaf, nor put a stumbling-block before the blind._" But
when his heart was at peace his voice would be soft, and he would read
of the child Samuel sanctified to the Lord in the temple, and how the
Lord called him and he answered--
"_And it came to pass at that time, when Eli was laid down in his
place, and his eyes began to wax dim, that he could not see; and ere
the lamp of God went out in the temple of the Lord, where the Ark of
God was, and Samuel was laid down to sleep, that the Lord called
Samuel, and he answered, Here am I. And he ran unto Eli and said,
Here am I, for thou calledst me. And he said, I called not; lie down
again. And he went and lay down. And the Lord called yet again,
Samuel. And Samuel rose and went to Eli and said, Here am I for thou
didst call me. And he answered, I called not my son; lie down again.
Now Samuel did not yet know the Lord, neither was the word of the
Lord yet revealed to him._"
And, having finished his reading, Israel would close the book, and
sing out of the Psalms of David the psalm which says, "It is good for
me that I have been in trouble, that I may learn Thy statutes."
Thus, night after night, when the sun was gone down, did Israel
read of the law and sing of the Psalms to Naomi, his daughter, who
was both blind and deaf. And though Naomi heard not, and neither did
she see, yet in their silent hour together there was another in their
chamber always with them--there was a third, for there was God.
When Israel had been some twenty years at Tetuan, Naomi being then
fourteen years of age, Ben Aboo, the Basha, married a Christian wife.
The woman's name was Katrina. She was a Spaniard by birth, and had
first come to Morocco at the tail of a Spanish embassy, which
travelled through Tetuan from Ceuta to the Sultan at Fez. What her
belongings were, and what her antecedents had been, no one appeared to
know, nor did Ben Aboo himself seem to care. She answered all his
present needs in her own person, which was ample in its proportions
and abundant in its charms.
In marrying Ben Aboo, the wily Katrina imposed two conditions. The
first was, that he should put away the full Mohammedan complement of
four Moorish wives, whom he had married already as well as the many
concubines that he had annexed in his way through life, and now kept
lodged in one unquiet nest in the women's hidden quarter of the
Palace. The second condition was, that she herself should never be
banished to such seclusion, but, like the wife of any European
governor, should openly share the state of her husband.
Ben Aboo was in no mood to stand on the rights of a strict
Mohammedan, and he accepted both of her conditions. The first he
never meant to abide by, but the second she took care he should
observe, and, as a prelude to that public life which she intended to
live by his side, she insisted on a public marriage.
They were married according to the rites of the Catholic Church by
a Franciscan friar settled at Tangier, and the marriage festival
lasted six days. Great was the display, and lavish the outlay. Every
morning the cannon of the fort fired a round of shot from the hill,
every evening the tribesmen from the mountains went through their
feats of powder-play in the market-place, and every night a body of
Aissawa from Mequinez yelled and shrieked in the enclosure called the
M'salla, near the Bab er-Remoosh. Feasts were spread in the Kasbah,
and relays of guests from among the chief men of the town were
invited daily to partake of them.
No man dared to refuse his invitation, or to neglect the tribute
of a present, though the Moors well knew that they were lending the
light of their countenance to a brazen outrage on their faith, and
though it galled the hearts of the Jews to make merry at the marriage
of a Christian and a Muslim--no man except Israel, and he excused
himself with what grace he could, being in no mood for rejoicing, but
sick with sorrow of the heart.
The Spanish woman was not to be gainsaid. She had taken her
measure of the man, and had resolved that a servant so powerful as
Israel should pay her court and tribute before all. Therefore she
caused him to be invited again; but Israel had taken his measure of
the woman, and with some lack of courtesy he excused himself afresh.
Katrina was not yet done. She was a creature of resource, and
having heard of Naomi with strange stories concerning her, she
devised a children's feast for the last day of the marriage festival,
and caused Ben Aboo to write to Israel a formal letter, beginning "To
our well-beloved the excellent Israel ben Oliel, Praise to the one
God," and setting forth that on the morrow, when the "Sun of the
world" should "place his foot in the stirrup of speed," and gallop
"from the kingdom of shades," the Governor would "hold a gathering of
delight" for all the children of Tetuan and he, Israel, was besought
to "lighten it with the rays of his face, rivalled only by the sun,"
and to bring with him his little daughter Naomi, whose arrival
"similar to a spring breeze," should "dissipate the dark night of
solitude and isolation." This despatch written in the common cant of
the people, concluded with quotations from the Prophet on brotherly
love and a significant and more sincere assurance that the Basha would
not admit of excuses "of the thickness of a hair."
When Israel received the missive, his anger was hot and furious.
He leapt to the conclusion that, in demanding the presence of Naomi,
the Spanish woman, who must know of the child's condition desired only
to make a show of it. But, after a fume, he put that thought from him
as uncharitable and unwarranted, and resolved to obey the summons.
And, indeed, if he had felt any further diffidence, the sight of
Naomi's own eagerness must have driven it away. The little maid
seemed to know that something unusual was going on. Troops of poor
villagers from every miserable quarter of the bashalic came into the
town each day, beating drums, firing long guns, driving their presents
before them--bullocks, cows, and sheep--and trying to make believe
that they rejoiced and were glad. Naomi appeared to be conscious of
many tents pitched in the marketplace, of denser crowds in the streets,
and of much bustle everywhere.
Also she seemed to catch the contagion of little Ali's excitement.
The children of all the schools of the town, both Jewish and Moorish,
had been summoned through their Talebs to the festival; there was to
be dancing and singing and playing on musical instruments and Ali
himself, who had lately practised the kanoon--the lute, the
harp--under his teacher, was to show his skill before the Governor.
Therefore, great was the little black man's excitement, and, in the
fever of it, he would talk to every one of the event forthcoming--to
Fatima, to Habeebah, and often to Naomi also, until the memory of her
infirmity would come to him, or perhaps the derisive laugh of his
schoolfellows would stop him, and then, thinking they were laughing at
the girl, he would fall on them like a fury, and they would scamper
away.
When the great day came, Ali went off to the Kasbah with his school
and Taleb, in the long procession of many schools and many Talebs.
Every child carried a present for the rich Basha; now a boy with a
goat, then a girl with a lamb, again a poor tattered mite with a hen,
all cuddling them close like pets they must part with, yet all looking
radiantly happy in their sweet innocency, which had no alloy of pain
from the tree of the knowledge of good and evil.
Israel took Naomi by the hand, but no present with either of them,
and followed the children, going past the booths, the blind beggars,
the lepers, and the shrieking Arabs that lay thick about the gate,
through the iron-clamped door, and into the quadrangle, where groups
of women stood together closely covered in their blankets--the mothers
and sisters of the children, permitted to see their little ones pass
into the Kasbah, but allowed to go no farther--then down the crooked
passage, past the tiny mosque, like a closet, and the bath, like a
dungeon, and finally into the pillared patio, paved and walled with
tiles.
This was the place of the festival, and it was filled already with
a great company of children, their fathers and their teachers. Moors,
Arabs, Berbers, and Jews, clad in their various costumes of white and
blue and black and red--they were a gorgeous, a voluptuous, and,
perhaps, a beautiful spectacle in the morning sunlight.
As Israel entered, with Naomi by the hand, he was conscious that
every eye was on them, and as they passed through the way that was
made for them, he heard the whispered exclamations of the people.
"Shoof!" muttered a Moor. "See!" "It's himself," said a Jew. "And
the child," said another Jew. "Allah has smitten her," said an Arab
"Blind and dumb and deaf," said another Moor "God be gracious to my
father!" said another Arab.
Musicians were playing in the gallery that ran round the court,
and from the flat roof above it the women of the Governor's hareem,
not yet dispersed, his four lawful Mohammedan wives, and many
concubines, were gazing furtively down from behind their haiks. There
was a fountain in the middle of the patio, and at the farther end of
it, within an alcove that opened out of a horseshoe arch, beneath
ceilings hung with stalactites, against walls covered with silken
haities, and on Rabat rugs of many colours, sat Ben Aboo and his
Christian bride.
It was there that Israel saw the Spaniard for the first time, and
at the instant of recognition he shivered as with cold. She was a
handsome woman, but plainly a heartless one--selfish, vain, and
vulgar.
Ben Aboo hailed Israel with welcomes and peace-blessings, and
Katrina drew Naomi to her side.
"So this is the little maid of whom wonderful rumours are so rife?"
said Katrina.
Israel bent his head and shuddered at seeing the child at the
woman's feet.
"The darling is as fair as an angel," said Katrina, and she kissed
Naomi.
The kiss seemed to Israel to smite his own cheeks like a blow.
Then the performances of the children began, and truly they made a
pretty and affecting sight; the white walls, the deep blue sky, the
black shadows of the gallery, the bright sunlight, the grown people
massed around the patio, and these sweet little faces coming and going
in the middle of it. First, a line of Moorish girls in their
embroidered hazzams dancing after their native fashion, bending and
rising, twisting and turning, but keeping their feet in the same place
constantly. Then, a line of Jewish girls in their kilted skirts
dancing after the Jewish manner tripping on their slippered toes,
whirling and turning around with rapid motions, and playing timbrels
and tambourines held high above their heads by their shapely arms and
hands. Then passages of the Koran chanted by a group of Moorish boys
in their jellabs, purple and chocolate and white, peaked above their
red tarbooshes. Then a psalm by a company of Jewish boys in their
black skull-caps--a brave old song of Zion sung by silvery young
voices in an alien land. Finally, little black Ali, led out by his
teacher, with his diminutive Moorish harp in his hands, showing no
fear at all, but only a negro boy's shy looks of pleasure--his head
aside, his eyes gleaming, his white teeth glinting, and his face aglow.
Now down to this moment Naomi, at the feet of the woman, had been
agitated and restless, sometimes rising, then sinking back, sometimes
playing with her nervous fingers, and then pushing off her slippers.
It was as though she was conscious of the fine show which was going
forward, and knew that they were children who were making it. Perhaps
the breath of the little ones beat her on the level of her cheeks, or
perhaps the light air made by the sweep of their garments was wafted
to her sensitive body. Whatsoever the sense whereby the knowledge
came to her, clearly it was there in her flushed and twitching face,
which was full of that old hunger for child-company which Israel knew
too well.
But when little Ali was brought out and he began to play on his
kanoon, his harp, it was impossible to repress Naomi's excitement.
The girl leaped up from her place at the woman's feet, and with the
utmost rapidity of motion she passed like a gleam of light across the
patio to the boy's side. And, being there, she touched the harp as he
played it, and then a low cry came from her lips. Again she touched
it, and her eyes, though blind, seemed for an instant to flame like
fire. Then, with both her hands she clung to it, and with her lips
and her tongue she kissed it, while her whole body quivered like a
reed in the wind.
Israel saw what she did, and his very soul trembled at the sight
with wild thoughts that did not dare to take the name of hope. As
well as he could in the confusion of his own senses he stepped forward
to draw the little maiden back but the wife of the Governor called on
him to leave her.
"Leave her!" she cried. "Let us see what the child will do!"
At that moment Ali's playing came to as end, and the boy let the
harp pass to Naomi's clinging fingers, and then, half sitting, half
kneeling on the ground beside it, the girl took it to herself. She
caressed it, she patted it with her hand, she touched its strings, and
then a faint smile crossed her rosy lips. She laid her cheek against
it and touched its strings again, and then she laughed aloud. She
flung off her slippers and the garment that covered her beautiful arms,
and laid her pure flesh against the harp wheresoever her flesh might
cling, and touched its strings once more, and then her very heart
seemed to laugh with delight.
Now, what is to follow will seem to be no better than a
superstitious saying, but true it is, nevertheless, and simple sooth
for all it sounds so strange, that though Naomi was deaf as the grave,
and had never yet heard music, and though she was untaught and knew
nothing of the notes of a harp to strike them yet she swept the
strings to strange sounds such as no man had ever listened to before
and none could follow.
It was not music that the little maiden made to her ear, but only
motion to her body, and just as the deaf who are deaf alone are
sometimes found to take pleasure in all forms of percussion, and to
derive from them some of the sensations of sound--the trembling of the
air after thunder, the quivering of the earth after cannon, and the
quaking of vast walls after the ringing of mighty bells--so Naomi, who
was blind as well and had no sense save touch, found in her fingers,
which had gathered up the force of all the other senses, the power to
reproduce on this instrument of music the movement of things that
moved about her--the patter of the leaves of the fig-tree in the patio
of her home, the swirl of the great winds on the hill-top, the plash
of rain on her face, and the rippling of the levanter in her hair.
This was all the witchery of Naomi's playing, yet, because every
emotion in Nature had its harmony, so there was harmony of some wild
sort in the music that was struck by the girl's fingers out of the
strings of the harp. But, more than her music, which was perhaps,
only a rhapsody of sound, was the frenzy of the girl herself as she
made it. She lifted her head like a bird, her throat swelled, her
bosom heaved, and as she played, she laughed again and again.
There was something fascinating and magical in the spectacle of
the beautiful fair face aglow with joy, the rounded limbs (visible
through the robes) clinging to the sides of the harp, and the delicate
white fingers flying across the strings. There was something gruesome
and awful, as well, for the face of the girl was blind, and her ears
heard nothing of the sounds that her fingers were making.
Every eye was on her, and in the wide circle around every mouth was
agape. And when those who looked on and listened had recovered from
their first surprise, very strange and various were the whispered
words they passed between them. "Where has she learnt it?" asked a
Moor. "From her master himself," muttered a Jew. "Who is it?" asked
the Moor. "Beelzebub," growled the Jew. "God pity me, the evil eye is
on her," said an Arab. "God will show," said a Shereef from Wazzan.
"They say her mother was a childless woman, and offered petitions for
Hannah's blessing at the tomb of Rabbi Amran." "No," said the Arab;
"she sent her girdle." "Anyhow, the child is a saint," whispered the
Shereef. "No, but a devil," snorted the Jew.
"Brava, brava, brava!" cried the new wife of Ben Aboo, and she
cheered and laughed as the girl played. "What did I tell you?" she
said, looking toward her husband. "The child is not deaf, no, nor
blind either. Oh, it's a brave imposture! Brava, brave!"
Still the little maiden played, but now her brow was clouded, her
head dropped, her eyelashes were downcast, and she hung over the harp
and sighed audibly.
"Good again!" cried the woman. "Very good!" and she clapped her
hands, whereupon the Arabs and the Moors, forgetting their dread,
felt constrained to follow her example, and they cheered in their
wilder way, but the Jews continued to mutter, "Beelzebub, Beelzebub!"
Israel saw it all, and at first, amid the commotion of his mind
and the confusion of his senses, his heart melted at sight of what
Naomi did. Had God opened a gateway to her soul? Were the poor wings
of her spirit to spread themselves out at last? Was this, then, the
way of speech that Heaven had given her? But hardly had Israel
overflowed with the tenderness of such thoughts when the bleating and
barking of the faces about him awakened his anger. Then, like blows on
his brain, came the cries of the wife of the Governor, who cheered
this awakening of the girl's soul as it were no better than a vulgar
show; and at that Israel's wrath rose to his throat.
"Brava, brava!" cried the woman again; and, turning to Israel, she
said, "You shall leave the child with me. I must have her with me
always."
Israel's throat seemed to choke him at that word. He looked at
Katrina, and saw that she was a woman lustful of breath and vain of
heart, who had married Ben Aboo because he was rich. Then he looked at
Naomi, and remembered that her heart was clear as the water, and sweet
as the morning, and pure as the snow.
And at that moment the wife of the Governor cheered again, and
again the people echoed her, and even the women on the housetops made
bold to take up her cry with their cooing ululation. The playing had
ceased, the spell had dissolved, Naomi's fingers had fallen from the
harp, her head had dropped into her breast, and with a sigh she had
sunk forward on to her face.
"Take her in!" said the wife of Ben Aboo, and two Arab soldiers
stepped up to where the little maiden lay. But before they had
touched her Israel strode out with swollen lips and distended
nostrils.
"Stop!" he cried.
The Arabs hesitated, and looked towards their master.
"Do as you are bidden--take her in!" said Ben Aboo.
"Stop!" cried Israel again, in a loud voice that rang through the
court. Then, parting the Arabs with a sweep of his arms, he picked up
the unconscious maiden, and faced about on the new wife of Ben Aboo.
"Madam," he cried, "I, Israel ben Oliel, may belong to the
Governor, but my child belongs to me."
So saying, he passed out of the court, carrying the girl in his
arms, and in the dead silence and blank stupor of that moment none
seemed to know what he had done until he was gone.
Israel went home in his anger; but nevertheless, out of this event
he found courage in his heart to begin his task again. Let his
enemies bleat and bark "Beelzebub," yet the child was an angel, though
suffering for his sin, and her soul was with God. She was a spirit,
and the songs she had played were the airs of paradise. But,
comforting himself so, Israel remembered the vision of Ruth, wherein
Naomi had recovered her powers. He had put it from him hitherto as
the delirium of death, but would the Lord yet bring it to pass? Would
God in His mercy some day take the angel out of his house, though so
strangely gifted, so radiant and beautiful and joyful, and give him
instead for the hunger of his heart as a man this sweet human child,
his little, fair-haired Naomi, though helpless and simple and weak?
Israel's instinct had been sure: the coming of Katrina proved to
be the beginning of his end. He kept his office, but he lost his
power. No longer did he work his own will in Tetuan; he was required
to work the will of the woman. Katrina's will was an evil one, and
Israel got the blame of it, for still he seemed to stand in all
matters of tribute and taxation between the people and the Governor.
It galled him to take the woman's wages, but it vexed him yet more to
do her work. Her work was to burden the people with taxes beyond all
their power of paying; her wages was to be hated as the bane of the
bashalic, to be clamoured against as the tyrant of Tetuan, and to be
ridiculed by the very offal of the streets.
One day a gang of dirty Arabs in the market-place dressed up a
blind beggar in clothes such as Israel wore, and sent him abroad
through the town to beg as one that was destitute and in a miserable
condition. But nothing seemed to move Israel to pity. Men were cast
into prison for no reason save that they were rich, and the relations
of such as were there already were allowed to redeem them for money,
so that no felon suffered punishment except such as could pay nothing.
People took fright and fled to other cities. Israel's name became a
curse and a reproach throughout Barbary.
Yet all this time the man's soul was yearning with pity for the
people. Since the death of Ruth his heart had grown merciful. The
care of the child had softened him. It had brought him to look on
other children with tenderness, and looking tenderly on other children
had led him to think of other fathers with compassion. Young or old,
powerful or weak, mighty or mean, they were all as little
children--helpless children who would sleep together in the same bed
soon.
Thinking so, Israel would have undone the evil work of earlier
years; but that was impossible now. Many of them that had suffered
were dead; some that had been cast into prison had got their last and
long discharge. At least Israel would have relaxed the rigour whereby
his master ruled, but that was impossible also. Katrina had come, and
she was a vain woman and a lover of all luxury, and she commanded
Israel to tax the people afresh. He obeyed her through three bad
years; but many a time his heart reproached him that he dealt
corruptly by the poor people, and when he saw them borrowing money for
the Governor's tributes on their lands and houses, and when he stood
by while they and their sons were cast into prison for the bonds which
they could not pay to the usurers Abraham or Judah or Reuben, then
his soul cried out against him that he ate the bread of such a
mistress.
But out of the eater came forth meat, and out of the strong came
forth sweetness, and out of this coming of the Spanish wife of Ben
Aboo came deliverance for Israel from the torment of his false
position.
There was an aged and pious Moor in Tetuan, called Abd Allah, who
was rumoured to have made savings from his business as a gunsmith.
Going to mosque one evening, with fifteen dollars in his waistband,
he unstrapped his belt and laid it on the edge of the fountain while
he washed his feet before entering, for his back was no longer supple.
Then a younger Moor, coming to pray at the same time, saw the
dollars, and snatched them up and ran. Abd Allah could not follow the
thief, so he went to the Kasbah and told his story to the Governor.
Just at that time Ben Aboo had the Kaid of Fez on a visit to him.
"Ask him how much more he has got," whispered the brother Kaid to Ben
Aboo.
Abd Allah answered that he did not know.
"I'll give you two hundred dollars for the chance of all he has,"
the Kaid whispered again.
"Five bees are better than a pannier of flies--done!" said Ben
Aboo.
So Abd Allah was sold like a sheep and carried to Fez, and there
cast into prison on a penalty of two hundred and fifty dollars imposed
upon him on the pretence of a false accusation.
Israel sat by the Governor that day at the gate of the hall of
justice, and many poor people of the town stood huddled together in
the court outside while the evil work was done. No one heard the Kaid
of Fez when he whispered to Ben Aboo, but every one saw when Israel
drew the warrant that consigned the gunsmith to prison, and when he
sealed it with the Governor's seal.
Abd Allah had made no savings, and, being too old for work, he had
lived on the earnings of his son. The son's name was Absalam (Abd
es-Salem), and he had a wife whom he loved very tenderly, and one
child, a boy of six years of age. Absalam followed his father to Fez,
and visited him in prison. The old man had been ordered a hundred
lashes, and the flesh was hanging from his limbs. Absalam was great
of heart, and, in pity of his father's miserable condition he went to
the Governor and begged that the old man might be liberated, and that
he might be imprisoned instead. His petition was heard. Abd Allah
was set free, Absalam was cast into prison, and the penalty was raised
from two hundred and fifty dollars to three hundred.
Israel heard of what had happened, and he hastened to Ben Aboo, in
great agitation, intending to say "Pay back this man's ransom, in
God's name, and his children and his children's children will live to
bless you." But when he got to the Kasbah, Katrina was sitting with
her husband, and at sight of the woman's face Israel's tongue was
frozen.
Absalam had been the favourite of his neighbours among all the
gunsmiths of the market-place, and after he had been three months at
Fez they made common cause of his calamities, sold their goods at a
sacrifice, collected the three hundred dollars of his fine, bought him
out of prison, and went in a body through the gate to meet him upon
his return to Tetuan. But his wife had died in the meantime of fear
and privation, and only his aged father and his little son were there
to welcome him.
"Friends," he said to his neighbours standing outside the walls,
"what is the use of sowing if you know not who will reap?"
"No use, no use!" answered several voices.
"If God gives you anything, this man Israel takes it away," said
Absalam.
"True, true! Curse him! Curse his relations!" cried the others.
"Then why go back into Tetuan?" said Absalam.
"Tangier is no better," said one. "Fez is worse," said another.
"Where is there to go?" said a third.
"Into the plains," said Absalam--"into the plains and into the
mountains, for they belong to God alone."
That word was like the flint to the tinder.
"They who have least are richest, and they that have nothing are
best off of all," said Absalam, and his neighbours shouted that it was
so.
"God will clothe us as He clothes the fields," said Absalam, "and
feed our children as He feeds the birds."
In three days' time ten shops in the market-place, on the side of
the Mosque, were sold up and closed, and the men who had kept them
were gone away with their wives and children to live in tents with
Absalam on the barren plains beyond the town.
When Israel heard of what had been done he secretly rejoiced; but
Ben Aboo was in a commotion of fear, and Katrina was fierce with
anger, for the doctrine which Absalam had preached to his neighbours
outside the walls was not his own doctrine merely, but that of a great
man lately risen among the people, called Mohammed of Mequinez,
nicknamed by his enemies Mohammed the Third.
"This madness is spreading," said Ben Aboo.
"Yes," said Katrina; "and if all men follow where these men lead,
who will supply the tables of Kaids and Sultans?"
"What can I do with them?" said Ben Aboo.
"Eat them up," said Katrina.
Ben Aboo proceeded to put a literal interpretation upon his wife's
counsel. With a company of cavalry he prepared to follow Absalam and
his little fellowship, taking Israel along with him to reckon their
taxes, that he might compel them to return to Tetuan, and be
town-dwellers and house-dwellers and buy and sell and pay tribute as
before, or else deliver themselves to prison.
But Absalam and his people had secret word that the Governor was
coming after them, and Israel with him. So they rolled their tents,
and fled to the mountains that are midway between Tetuan and the Reef
country, and took refuge in the gullies of that rugged land, living in
caves of the rock, with only the table-land of mountain behind them,
and nothing but a rugged precipice in front. This place they selected
for its safety, intending to push forward, as occasion offered, to the
sanctuaries of Shawan, trusting rather to the humanity of the wild
people, called the Shawanis, than to the mercy of their late cruel
masters. But the valley wherein they had hidden is thick with trees,
and Ben Aboo tracked them and came up with them before they were
aware. Then, sending soldiers to the mountain at the back of the
caves, with instructions that they should come down to the precipice
steadily, and kill none that they could take alive, Ben Aboo himself
drew up at the foot of it, and Israel with him, and there called on
the people to come out and deliver themselves to his will.
When the poor people came from their hiding-places and saw that
they were surrounded, and that escape was not left to them on any
side, they thought their death was sure. But without a shout or a cry
they knelt, as with one accord, at the mouth of the precipice, with
their backs to it, men and women and children, knee to knee in a line,
and joined hands, and looked towards the soldiers, who were coming
steadily down on them. On and on the soldiers came, eye to eye with
the people, and their swords were drawn.
Israel gasped for his breath, and waited to see the people cut in
pieces at the next instant, when suddenly they began to sing where
they knelt at the edge of the precipice, "God is our refuge and our
strength, a very present help in trouble."
In another moment the soldiers had drawn up as if swords from
heaven had fallen on them, and Israel was crying out of his dry
throat, "Fear nothing! Only deliver your bodies to the Governor, and
none shall harm you."
Absalam rose up from his knees and called to his father and his
son. And standing between them to be seen by all, and first looking
upon both with eyes of pity, he drew from the folds of his selham a
long knife such as the Reefians wear, and taking his father by his
white hair he slew him and cast his body down the rocks. After that
he turned towards his son, and the boy was golden-haired and his face
was like the morning, and Israel's heart bled to see him.
"Absalam!" he cried in a moving voice; "Absalam, wait, wait!"
But Absalam killed his son also, and cast him down after his
father. Then, looking around on his people with eyes of compassion,
as seeming to pity them that they must fall again into the hands of
Israel and his master, he stretched out his knife and sheathed it in
his own breast, and fell towards the precipice.
Israel covered his face and groaned in his heart, and said, "It is
the end, O Lord God, it is the end--polluted wretch that I am, with
the blood of these people upon me!"
The companions of Absalam delivered themselves to the soldiers,
who committed them to the prison at Shawan, and Ben Aboo went home in
content.
Rumour of what had come to pass was not long in reaching Tetuan,
and Israel was charged with the guilt of it. In passing through the
streets the next day on his way to his house the people hissed him
openly. "Allah had not written it!" a Moor shouted as he passed.
"Take care!" cried an Arab, "Mohammed of Mequinez is coming!"
It chanced that night, after sundown, when Naomi, according to her
wont, led her father to the upper room, and fetched the Book of the
Law from the cupboard of the wall and laid it upon his knees, that he
read the passage whereon the page opened of itself, scarce knowing
what he read when he began to read it, for his spirit was heavy with
the bad doings of those days. And the passage whereon the book opened
was this--
"_Aaron shall cast lots upon the two goats: one lot for the Lord,
and the other lot for the scapegoat. . . . Then shall he kill the
goat of the sin-offering that is for the people, and bring his blood
within the vail. And he shall make an atonement for the holy place,
because of the uncleanness of the children of Israel, and because of
their transgressions in all their sins. . . . And when he hath, made
an end of reconciling the holy place, and the tabernacle of the
congregation, and the altar, he shall bring the live goat: and Aaron
shall lay both his hands upon the head of the live goat, and confess
over him all the iniquities of the children of Israel, and all their
transgressions in all their sins, putting them upon the head of the
goat, and shall send him away by the hand of a fit man into the
wilderness. And the goat shall bear upon him all their iniquities
unto a land not inhabited._"
That same night Israel dreamt a dream. He had been asleep, and
had awakened in a place which he did not know. It was a great arid
wilderness. Ashen sand lay on every side; a scorching sun beat down
on it, and nowhere was there a glint of water. Israel gazed, and
slowly through the blazing sunlight he discerned white roofless walls
like the ruins of little sheepfolds. "They are tombs," he told
himself, "and this is a Mukabar-- an Arab graveyard--the most desolate
place in the world of God." But, looking again, he saw that the
roofless walls covered the ground as far as the eye could see, and the
thought came to him that this ashen desert was the earth itself, and
that all the world of life and man was dead. Then, suddenly, in the
motionless wilderness, a solitary creature moved. It was a goat, and
it toiled over the hot sand with its head hung down and its tongue
lolled out. "Water!" it seemed to cry, though it made no voice, and
its eyes traversed the plain as if they would pierce the ground for a
spring. Fever and delirium fell upon Israel. The goat came near to
him and lifted up its eyes, and he saw its face. Then he shrieked and
awoke. The face of the goat had been the face of Naomi.
Now Israel knew that this was no more than a dream, coming of the
passage which he had read out of the book at sundown, but so vivid was
the sense of it that he could not rest in his bed until he had first
seen Naomi with his waking eyes, that he might laugh in his heart to
think how the eye of his sleep had fooled him. So he lit his lamp,
and walked through the silent house to where Naomi's room was on the
lower floor of it.
There she lay, sleeping so peacefully, with her sunny hair flowing
over the pillow on either side of her beautiful face, and rippling in
little curls about her neck. How sweet she looked! How like a dear
bud of womanhood just opening to the eye!
Israel sat down beside her for a moment. Many a time before, at
such hours, he had sat in that same place, and then gone his ways, and
she had known nothing of it. She was like any other maiden now. Her
eyes were closed, and who should see that they were blind? Her breath
came gently, and who should say that it gave forth no speech? Her face
was quiet, and who should think that it was not the face of a
homely-hearted girl? Israel loved these moments when he was alone
with Naomi while she slept, for then only did she seem to be entirely
his own, and he was not so lonely while he was sitting there. Though
men thought he was strong, yet he was very weak. He had no one in the
world to talk to save Naomi, and she was dumb in the daytime, but in
the night he could hold little conversations with her. His love! his
dove! his darling! How easily he could trick and deceive himself and
think, She will awake presently, and speak to me! Yes; her eyes will
open and see me here again, and I shall hear her voice, for I love it!
"Father!" she will say. "Father--father--"
Only the moment of undeceiving was so cruel!
Naomi stirred, and Israel rose and left her. As he went back to
his bed, through the corridor of the patio, he heard a night-cry
behind him that made his hair to rise. It was Naomi laughing in her
sleep.
Israel dreamt again that night, and he believed his second dream
to be a vision. It was only a dream, like the first; but what his
dream would be to us is nought, and what it was to him is everything.
The vision as he thought he saw it was this, and these were the words
of it as he thought he heard them--
It was the middle of the night, and he was lying in his own room,
when a dull red light as of dying flame crossed the foot of the bed,
and a voice that was as the voice of the Lord came out of it, crying
"Israel!"
And Israel was sorely afraid, and answered, "Speak, Lord, Thy
servant heareth."
Then the Lord said, "Thou has read of the goats whereon the high
priest cast lots, one lot for the sin offering and one lot for the
scapegoat."
And Israel answered trembling, "I have read."
Then the Lord said to Israel, "Look now upon Naomi, thy child, for
she is as the sin-offering for thy sins, to make atonement for thy
transgressions, for thee and for thy household, and therefore she is
dumb to all uses of speech, and blind to all service of sight, a soul
in chains and a spirit in prison, for behold, she is as the lot that
is cast for justice and for the Lord."
And Israel groaned in his agony and cried, "Would that the lot had
fallen upon me, O Lord, that Thou mightest be justified when thou
speakest, and be clear when Thou judgest, for I alone am guilty before
Thee."
Then said the Lord to Israel, "On thee, also, hath the lot fallen,
even the lot of the scapegoat of the enemies of the people of God."
And Israel quaked with fear, and the Lord called to him again, and
said, "Israel, even as the scapegoat carries the iniquities of the
people, so cost thou carry the iniquities of thy master, Ben Aboo,
and of his wife, Katrina; and even as the goat bears the sins of the
people into the wilderness, so, in the resurrection, shalt thou bear
the sins of this man and of this woman into a land that no man
knoweth."
Then Israel wrestled no longer with the Lord, but sweated as it
were drops of blood, and cried, "What shall I do, O Lord?"
And the Lord said, "Lie unto the morning, and then arise, get thee
to the country by Mequinez and to the man there whereof thou hast
heard tidings, and he shall show thee what thou shalt do."
Then Israel wept with gladness, and cried, saying, "Shall my soul
live? Shall the lot be lifted from off me, and from off Naomi, my
daughter?"
But the Lord left him, the red light died out from across the bed,
and all around was darkness.
Now to the last day and hour of his life Israel would have taken
oath on the Scriptures that he saw this vision, and he heard this
voice, not in his sleep and as in a dream, but awake, and having plain
sight of all common things about him--his room and his bed; and the
canopy that covered it. And on rising in the morning, at daydawn, so
actual was the sense of what he had seen and heard, and so powerful
the impression of it, that he straightway set himself to carry out
the injunction it had made, without question of its reality or doubt
of its authority.
Therefore, committing his household to the care of Ali, who was now
grown to be a stalwart black lad his constant right hand and helpmate,
Israel first sent to the Governor, saying he should be ten days absent
from Tetuan, and then to the Kasbah for a soldier and guide, and to
the market-place for mules.
Before the sun was high everything was in readiness, and the
caravan was waiting at the door. Then Israel remembered Naomi. Where
was the girl, that he had not seen her that morning? They answered him
that she had not yet left her room, and he sent the black woman
Fatimah to fetch her. And when she came and he had kissed her,
bidding her farewell in silence, his heart misgave him concerning her,
and, after raising his foot to the stirrup, he returned to where she
stood in the patio with the two bondwomen beside her.
"Is she well?" he asked.
"Oh yes, well--very well," said Fatimah, and Habeebah echoed her.
Nevertheless, Israel remembered that he had not heard the only
language of her lips, her laugh, and, looking at her again, he saw
that her face, which had used to be cheerful, was now sad. At that he
almost repented of his purpose, and but for shame in his own eyes he
might have gone no farther, for it smote him with terror that, though
she were sick, nothing could she say to stay him, and even if she were
dying she must let him go his ways without warning.
He kissed her again, and she clung to him, so that at last, with
many words of tender protest which she did not hear, he had to break
away from the beautiful arms that held him.
Ali was waiting by the mules in the streets, and the soldier and
guide and muleteers and tentmen were already mounted, amid a
chattering throng of idle people looking on.
"Ali, my lad," said Israel, "if anything should befall Naomi while
I am away, will you watch over her and guard her with all your
strength?"
"With all my life," said Ali stoutly. He was Naomi's playfellow
no longer, but her devoted slave.
MOHAMMED of Mequinez, the man whom Israel went out to seek, had
been a Kadi and the son of a Kadi. While he was still a child his
father died, and he was brought up by two uncles, his father's
brothers, both men of yet higher place, the one being Naib es-sultan,
or Foreign Minister, at Tangier, and the other Grand Vizier to the
Sultan at Morocco. Thus in a land where there is one noble only, the
Sultan himself, where ascent and descent are as free as in a republic,
though the ways of both are mired with crime and corruption, Mohammed
was come as from the highest nobility. Nevertheless, he renounced his
rank and the hope of wealth that went along with it at the call of
duty and the cry of misery.
He parted from his uncles, abandoned his judgeship, and went out
into the plains. The poor and outcast and down-trodden among the
people, the shamed, the disgraced, and the neglected left the towns
and followed him. He established a sect. They were to be despisers
of riches and lovers of poverty. No man among them was to have more
than another. They were never to buy or sell among themselves, but
every one was to give what he had to him that wanted it. They were to
avoid swearing, yet whatever they said was to be firmer than an oath.
They were to be ministers of peace, and if any man did them violence
they were never to resist him. Nevertheless they were not to lack for
courage, but to laugh to scorn the enemies that tormented them, and
smile in their pains and shed no tear. And as for death, if it was for
their glory they were to esteem it more than life, because their
bodies only were corruptible, but their souls were immortal, and would
mount upwards when released from the bondage of the flesh. Not
dissenters from the Koran, but stricter conformers to it; not
Nazarenes and not Jews, yet followers of Jesus in their customs and of
Moses in their doctrines.
And Moors and Berbers, Arabs and Negroes, Muslimeen and Jews,
heard the cry of Mohammed of Mequinez, and he received them all. From
the streets, from the market-places, from the doors of the prisons,
from the service of hard masters, and from the ragged army itself,
they arose in hundreds and trooped after him. They needed no badge
but the badge of poverty, and no voice of pleading but the voice of
misery. Most of them brought nothing with them in their hands, and
some brought little on their backs save the stripes of their
tormentors. A few had flocks and herds, which they drove before them.
A few had tents, which they shared with their fellows; and a few had
guns, with which they shot the wild boar for their food and the hyena
for their safety. Thus, possessing little and desiring nothing,
having neither houses nor lands, and only considering themselves
secure from their rulers in having no money, this company of battered
human wrecks, life-broken and crime-logged and stranded, passed with
their leader from place to place of the waste country about Mequinez.
And he, being as poor as they were, though he might have been so
rich, cheered them always, even when they murmured against him, as
Absalam had cheered his little fellowship at Tetuan: "God will feed us
as He feeds the birds of the air, and clothe our little ones as He
clothes the fields."
Such was the man whom Israel went out to seek. But Israel knew
his people too well to make known his errand. His besetting
difficulties were enough already. The year was young, but the days
were hot; a palpitating haze floated always in the air, and the grass
and the broom had the dusty and tired look of autumn. It was also the
month of the fast of Ramadhan, and Israel's men were Muslims. So, to
save himself the double vexation of oppressive days and the constant
bickerings of his famished people, Israel found it necessary at length
to travel in the night. In this way his journey was the shorter for
the absence of some obstacles, but his time was long.
And, just as he had hidden his errand from the men of his own
caravan, so he concealed it from the people of the country that he
passed through, and many and various, and sometimes ludicrous and
sometimes very pitiful were the conjectures they made concerning it.
While he was passing through his own province of Tetuan, nothing did
the poor people think but that he had come to make a new assessment of
their lands and holdings, their cattle and belongings, that he might
tax them afresh and more fully. So, to buy his mercy in advance, many
of them came out of their houses as he drew near, and knelt on the
ground before his horse, and kissed the skirts of his kaftan, and his
knees, and even his foot in his stirrup, and called him _Sidi_
(master, my lord), a title never before given to a Jew, and offered
him presents out of their meagre substance.
"A gift for my lord," they would say, "of the little that God has
given us, praise His merciful name for ever!"
Then they would push forward a sheep or a goat, or a string of hens
tied by the legs so as to hang across his saddle-bow, or, perhaps, at
the two trembling hands of an old woman living alone on a hungry
scratch of land in a desolate place, a bowl of buttermilk.
Israel was touched by the people's terror, but he betrayed no
feeling.
"Keep them," he would answer; "keep them until I come again,"
intending to tell them, when that time came, to keep their poor gifts
altogether.
And when he had passed out of the province of Tetuan into the
bashalic of El Kasar, the bareheaded country-people of the valley of
the Koos hastened before him to the Kaid of that grey town of bricks
and storks and palm-trees and evil odours, and the Kaid, with another
notion of his errand, came to the tumble-down bridge to meet him on
his approach in the early morning.
"Peace be with you!" said the Kaid. "So my lord is going again to
the Shereef at Wazzan; may the mercy of the Merciful protect him!"
Israel neither answered yea nor nay, but threaded the maze of
crooked lanes to the lodging which had been provided for him near the
market-place, and the same night he left the town (laden with the
presents of the Kaid) through a line of famished and half-naked
beggars who looked on with feverish eyes.
Next day, at dawn, he came to the heights of Wazzan (a holy city
of Morocco), by the olives and junipers and evergreen oaks that grow
at the foot of the lofty, double-peaked Boo-Hallal, and there the
young grand Shereef himself, at the gate of his odorous
orange-gardens, stood waiting to give audience with yet another
conjecture as to the intention of his journey.
"Welcome! welcome!" said the Shereef; "all you see is yours until
Allah shall decree that you leave me too soon on your happy mission to
our lord the Sultan at Fez--may God prolong his life and bless him!"
"God make you happy!" said Israel, but he offered no answer to the
question that was implied.
"It is twenty and odd years, my lord," the Shereef continued,
"since my father sent for you out of Tetuan, and many are the ups and
downs that time has wrought since then, under Allah's will; but none
in the past have been so grateful as the elevation of Israel ben
Oliel, and none in the future can be so joyful as the favours which
the Sultan (God keep our lord Abd er-Rahman!) has still in store for
him."
"God will show," said Israel.
No Jew had ever yet ridden in this Moroccan Mecca; but the Shereef
alighted from his horse and offered it to Israel, and took Israel's
horse instead and together they rode through the market-place, and
past the old Mosque that is a ruin inhabited by hawks and the other
mosque of the Aissawa, and the three squalid fondaks wherein the Jews
live like cattle. A swarm of Arabs followed at their heels in tattered
greasy rags, a group of Jews went by them barefoot and a knot of
bedraggled renegades leaning against the walls of the prison doffed
the caps from their dishevelled heads and bowed.
That day, while the poor people of the town fasted according to
the ordinance of the Ramadhan, Israel's little company of
Muslimeen--guests in the house of the descendants of the Prophet--were,
by special Shereefian dispensation, permitted as travellers to eat
and drink at their pleasure. And before sunset, but at the verge of
it, Israel and his men started on their journey afresh, going out of
the town, with the Shereef's black bodyguard riding before them for
guide and badge of honour, through the dense and noisome market-place,
where (like a clock that is warning to strike) a multitude of hungry
and thirsty people with fierce and dirty faces, under a heavy wave of
palpitating heat, and amid clouds of hot dust, were waiting for the
sound of the cannon that should proclaim the end of that day's fast.
Water-carriers at the fountains stood ready to fill their empty goats'
skins, women and children sat on the ground with dishes of greasy soup
on their knees and balls of grain rolled in their fingers, men lay
about holding pipes charged with keef, and flint and tinder to light
them, and the mooddin himself in the minaret stood looking abroad
(unless he were blind) to where the red sun was lazily sinking under
the plain.
Israel's soul sickened within him, for well he knew that, lavish
as were the honours that were shown him, they were offered by the rich
out of their selfishness and by the poor out of their fear. While they
thought the Sultan had sent for him, they kissed his foot who desired
no homage, and loaded him with presents who needed no gifts. But one
word out of his mouth, only one little word, one other name, and what
then of this lip-service, and what of this mock-honour!
Two days later Israel and his company reached before dawn the
snake-like ramparts of Mequinez the city of walls. And toiling in the
darkness over the barren plain and the belt of carrion that lies in
front of the town, through the heat and fumes of the fetid place, and
amid the furious barks of the scavenger dogs which prowl in the night
around it, they came in the grey of morning to the city gate over the
stream called the Father of Tortoises. The gate was closed, and the
night police that kept it were snoring in their rags under the arch of
the wall within.
"Selam! M'barak! Abd el Kader! Abd el Kareem!" shouted the
Shereef's black guard to the sleepy gate-keepers. They had come thus
far in Israel's honour, and would not return to Wazzan until they had
seen him housed within.
From the other side of the gate, through the mist and the gloom,
came yawns and broken snores and then snarls and curses. "Burn your
father! Pretty hubbub in the middle of the night!"
"Selam!" shouted one of the black guard. "You dog of dogs! Your
father was bewitched by a hyena! I'll teach you to curse your
betters. Quick! get up,--or I'll shave your beard. Open! or I'll
ride the donkey on your head! There!--and there!--and there again!"
and at every word the butt of his long gun rang on the old oaken gate.
"Hamed el Wazzani!" muttered several voices within.
"Yes," shouted the Shereef's man. "And my Lord Israel of Tetuan
on his way to the Sultan, God grant him victory. Do you hear, you
dogs? Sidi Israel el Tetawani sitting here in the dark, while you are
sleeping and snoring in your dirt."
There was a whispered conference on the inside, then a rattle of
keys, and then the gate groaned back on its hinges. At the next
moment two of the four gatemen were on their knees at the feet of
Israel's horse, asking forgiveness by grace of Allah and his Prophet.
In the meantime, the other two had sped away to the Kasbah, and
before Israel had ridden far into the town, the Kaid--against all
usage of his class and country--ran and met him--afoot, slipperless,
wearing nothing but selham and tarboosh, out of breath, yet with a
mouth full of excuses.
"I heard you were coming," he panted--"sent for by the
Sultan--Allah preserve him!--but had I known you were to be here so
soon--I--that is--"
"Peace be with you!" interrupted Israel.
"God grant you peace. The Sultan--praise the merciful Allah!" the
Kaid continued, bowing low over Israel's stirrup--" he reached Fez
from Marrakesh last sunset; you will be in time for him."
"God will show," said Israel, and he pushed forward.
"Ah, true--yes--certainly--my lord is tired," puffed the Kaid,
bowing again most profoundly. "Well, your lodging is ready--the best
in Mequinez--and your mona is cooking--all the dainties of
Barbary--and when our merciful Abd er-Rahman has made you his Grand
Vizier--"
Thus the man chattered like a jay, bowing low at nigh every word,
until they came to the house wherein Israel and his people were to
rest until sunset; and always the burden of his words was the
same--the Sultan, the Sultan, the Sultan, and Abd er-Rahman, Abd
er-Rahman!
Israel could bear no more. "Basha," he said "it is a mistake; the
Sultan has not sent for me, and neither am I going to see him."
"Not going to him?" the Kaid echoed vacantly.
"No, but to another," said Israel; "and you of all men can best
tell me where that other is to be found. A great man, newly
risen--yet a poor man--the young Mahdi Mohammed of Mequinez."
Then there was a long silence.
Israel did not rest in Mequinez until sunset of that day. Soon
after sunrise he went out at the gate at which he had so lately
entered, and no man showed him honour. The black guard of the Shereef
of Wazzan had gone off before him, chuckling and grinning in their
disgust, and behind him his own little company of soldiers, guides,
muleteers, and tentmen, who, like himself, had neither slept nor
eaten, were dragging along in dudgeon. The Kaid had turned them out of
the town.
Later in the day, while Israel and his people lay sheltering
within their tents on the plain of Sais by the river Nagar, near the
tent-village called a Douar, and the palm-tree by the bridge, there
passed them in the fierce sunshine two men in the peaked shasheeah of
the soldier, riding at a furious gallop from the direction of Fez, and
shouting to all they came upon to fly from the path they had to pass
over. They were messengers of the Sultan, carrying letters to the
Kaid of Mequinez, commanding him to present himself at the palace
without delay, that he might give good account of his stewardship, or
else deliver up his substance and be cast into prison for the
defalcations with which rumour had charged him.
Such was the errand of the soldiers, according to the
country-people, who toiled along after them on their way home from the
markets at Fez; and great was the glee of Israel's men on hearing it,
for they remembered with bitterness how basely the Kaid had treated
them at last in his false loyalty and hypocrisy. But Israel himself
was too nearly touched by a sense of Fate's coquetry to rejoice at
this new freak of its whim, though the victim of it had so lately
turned him from his door. Miserable was the man who laid up his
treasure in money-bags and built his happiness on the favour of
princes! When the one was taken from him and the other failed him,
where then was the hope of that man's salvation, whether in this world
or the next? The dungeon, the chain, the lash, the wooden jellab--what
else was left to him? Only the wail of the poor whom he has made
poorer, the curse of the orphan whom he has made fatherless, and the
execration of the down-trodden whom he has oppressed. These followed
him into his prison, and mingled their cries with the clank of his
irons, for they were voices which had never yet deserted the man that
made them, but clamoured loud at the last when his end had come,
above the death-rattle in his throat. One dim hour waited for all
men always, whether in the prison or in the palace--one lonely hour
wherein none could bear him company--and what was wealth and treasure
to man's soul beyond it? Was it power on earth? Was it glory? Was it
riches? Oh! glory of the earth--what could it be but a
will-o'-the-wisp pursued in the darkness of the night! Oh! riches of
gold and silver--what had they ever been but marsh-fire gathered in
the dusk! The empire of the world was evil, and evil was the service
of the prince of it!
Then Israel thought of Naomi, his sweet treasure--so far away.
Though all else fell from him like dry sand from graspless fingers,
yet if by God's good mercy the lot of the sin-offering could be lifted
away from his child, he would be content and happy! Naomi! His love!
His darling! His sweet flower afflicted for his transgression. Oh!
let him lose anything, everything, all that the world and all that the
devil had given him; but let the curse be lifted from his helpless
child! For what was gold without gladness, and what was plenty
without peace?
Israel lit upon the Mahdi at last in the country of the verbena
and the musk that lies outside the walls of Fez. The prophet was a
young man of unusual stature, but no great strength of body, with a
head that drooped like a flower and with the wild eyes of an
enthusiast. His people were a vast concourse that covered the plain a
furlong square, and included multitudes of women and children. Israel
had come upon them at an evil moment. The people were murmuring
against their leader. Six months ago they had abandoned their houses
and followed him They had passed from Mequinez to Rabat, from Rabat to
Mazagan, from Mazagan to Mogador, from Mogador to Marrakesh, and
finally from Marrakesh through the treacherous Beni Magild to Fez. At
every step their numbers had increased but their substance had
diminished, for only the destitute had joined them. Nevertheless,
while they had their flocks and herds they had borne their privations
patiently--the weary journeys, the exposure, the long rains of the
spring and the scorching heat of summer. But the soldiers of the
Kaids whose provinces they had passed through had stripped them of
both in the name of tribute. The last raid on their poverty had been
made that very day by the Kaid of Fez, and now they were without goats
or sheep or oxen, or even the guns with which they had killed the wild
bear, and their children were crying to them for bread.
So the people's faces grew black, and they looked into each other's
eyes in their impotent rage. Why had they been brought out of the
cities to starve? Better to stay there and suffer than come out and
perish! What of the vain promises that had been made to them that God
would feed them as He fed the birds! God was witness to all their
calamities; He was seeing them robbed day by day, He was seeing them
famish hour by hour, He was seeing them die. They had been fooled! A
vain man had thought to plough his way to power. Through their bodies
he was now ploughing it. "The hunger is on us!" "Our children are
perishing!" "Find us food!" "Food!" "Food!"
With such shouts, mingled with deep oaths, the hungry multitude in
their madness had encompassed Mohammed of Mequinez as Israel and his
company came up with them. And Israel heard their cries, and also the
voice of their leader when he answered them.
First the young prophet rose up among his people, with flashing
eyes and quivering nostrils. "Do you think I am Moses," he cried,
"that I should smite the rock and work you a miracle? If you are
starving, am I full? If you are naked, am I clothed?"
But in another instant the fire of anger was gone from his face,
and he was saying in a very moving voice, "My good people, who have
followed me through all these miseries, I know that your burdens are
heavier than you can bear, and that your lives are scarce to be
endured, and that death itself would be a relief. Nevertheless, who
shall say but that Allah sees a way to avert these trials of His poor
servants, and that, unknown to us all, He is even at this moment
bringing His mercy to pass! Patience, I beg of you; patience, my poor
people--patience and trust!"
At that the murmurs of discontent were hushed. Then Israel
remembered the presents with which the Kaid of El Kasar and the
Shereef of Wazzan had burdened him. They were jewels and ornaments
such as are sometimes worn unlawfully by vain men in that
country--silver signet rings and earrings, chains for the neck, and
Solomon's seal to hang on the breast as safeguard against the evil
eye--as well as much gold filagree of the kind that men give to their
women. Israel had packed them in a box and laid them in the leaf
pannier of a mule, and then given no further thought to them; but,
calling now to the muleteer who had charge of them, he said, "Take
them quickly to the good man yonder, and say, 'A present to the man of
God and to his people in their trouble.'"
And when the muleteer had done this, and laid the box of gold and
silver open at the feet of the young Mahdi, saying what Israel had
bidden him, it was the same to the young man and his followers as if
the sky had opened and rained manna on their heads.
"It is an answer to your prayer," he cried; "an angel from heaven
has sent it."
Then his people, as soon as they realised what good thing had
happened to them, took up his shout of joy, and shouted out of their
own parched throats--
"Prophet of Allah, we will follow you to the world's end!"
And then down on their knees they fell around him, the vast
concourse of men and women, all grinning like apes in their hunger and
glee together, and sobbing and laughing in a breath, like children,
and sent up a great broken cry of thanks to God that He had sent them
succour, that they might not die. At last, when they had risen to
their feet again, every man looked into the eyes of his fellow and
said, as if ashamed, I could have borne it myself, but when the
children called to me for bread. I was a fool."
Early the next day Israel set his face homeward, with this old word
of the new prophet for his guide and motto: "Exact no more than is
just; do violence to no man; accuse none falsely; part with your
riches and give to the poor." That was all the answer he got out of
his journey, and if any man had come to him in Tetuan with no newer
story, it must have been an idle and a foolish errand; but after El
Kasar, after Wazzan, after Mequinez, and now after Fez, it seemed to
be the sum of all wisdom. "I'll do it," he said; "at all risks and
all costs, I'll do it."
And, as a prelude to that change in his way of life which he meant
to bring to pass he sent his men and mules ahead of him, emptied his
pockets of all that he should not need on his journey, and prepared to
return to his own country on foot and alone. The men had first gaped
in amazement, and then laughed in derision; and finally they had gone
their ways by themselves, telling all who encountered them that the
Sultan at Fez had stripped their master of everything, and that he was
coming behind them penniless.
But, knowing nothing of this graceless service. Israel began his
homeward journey with a happy heart. He had less than thirty dollars
in his waistband of the more than three hundred with which he had set
out from Tetuan; he was a hundred and fifty miles from that town, or
five long days' travel; the sun was still hot, and he must walk in the
daytime. Surely the Lord would see it that never before had any man
done so much to wipe out God's displeasure as he was now doing and yet
would do. He had said nothing of Naomi to the Mahdi even when he told
him of his vision; but all his hopes had centred in the child. The lot
of the sin-offering must be gone from her now, and in the resurrection
he would meet her without shame. If he had brought fruits meet to
repentance, then must her debt also be wiped away. Surely never before
had any child been so smitten of God, and never had any father of an
afflicted child bought God's mercy at so dear a price!
Such were the thoughts that Israel cherished secretly, though he
dared not to utter them, lest he should seem to be bribing God out of
his love of the child. And thus if his heart was glad as he turned
towards home, it was proud also, and if it was grateful it was also
vain; but vanity and pride were both smitten out of it in an hour,
before he went through the gates of Fez (wherein he had slept the
night preceding), by three sights which, though stern and pitiful,
were of no uncommon occurrence in that town and province.
First, it chanced that as he was passing from the south-east of
the new town of Fez to the gate that is at the north-west corner,
going by the high walls of the Sultan's hareem, where there is room
for a thousand women, and near to the Karueein mosque that is the
greatest in Morocco and rests on eight hundred pillars, he came upon
two slaveholders selling twelve or fourteen slaves. The slaves were
all girls, and all black, and of varying ages, ranging from ten years
to about thirty. They had lately arrived in caravans from the Soudan,
by way of Tafilet and the Wargha, and some of them looked worn from
the desert passage. Others were fresh and cheerful, and such as had
claims to negro beauty were adorned, after their doubtful fashion, or
the fancy of their masters, with love-charms of silver worn about
their necks, with their fingers pricked out with hennah, and their
eyelids darkened with kohl. Thus they were drawn up in a line for
public auction; but before the sale of them could begin among the
buyers that had gathered about them in the street, the overseers of
the Sultan's hareem had to come and make a selection for their master.
This the eunuchs presently did, and when two of them nicknamed
Areefahs--gaunt and hairless men, with the faces of evil old women and
the hoarse voices of ravens--had picked out three fat black maidens,
the business of the auction began by the sale of a negro girl of
seventeen who was brought out from the rest and passed around.
"Now, brothers," said the slave-master, "look see; sound of wind
and limb--how much?"
"Eighty dollars," said a voice from the crowd.
"Eighty? Well, eighty to start with. Look at her--rosy lips, fit
for the kisses of a king, eh? How much?"
"A hundred dollars."
"A hundred dollars offered; only a hundred. It's giving the girl
away. Look at her teeth, brothers, white and sound."
The slave-master thrust his thumb into the girl's mouth and walked
her round the crowd again.
"Breath like new-mown hay, brothers. Now's the chance for true
believers. How much?"
"A hundred and ten."
"A hundred and ten--thanks, Sidi! A hundred and ten for this jewel
of a girl. Dirt cheap yet, brothers. Try her muscles. Look at her
flesh. Not a flaw anywhere. Pass her round, test her, try her, talk
to her--she speaks good Arabic. Isn't she fit for a Sultan? She's the
best thing I'll offer to-day, and by the Prophet, if you are not quick
I'll keep her for myself. Now, for the third and last time--seventeen
years of age, sound, strong, plump, sweet, and intact--how much?"
Israel's blood tingled to see how the bidders handled the girl,
and to hear what shameless questions they asked of her, and with a
long sigh he was turning away from the crowd, when another man came up
to it. The man was black and old and hard-featured, and visibly poor
in his torn white selham. But when he had looked over the heads of
those in front of him, he made a great shout of anguish, and, parting
the people, pushed his way to the girl's side, and opened his arms to
her, and she fell into them with a cry of joy and pain together.
It turned out that he was a liberated slave, who, ten years before,
had been brought from the Soos through the country of Sidi Hosain ben
Hashem, having been torn away from his wife, who was since dead, and
from his only child, who thus strangely rejoined him. This story he
told, in broken Arabic; to those that stood around, and, hard as were
the faces of the bidders, and brutal as was their trade; there was not
an eye among them all but was melted at his story.
Seeing this, Israel cried from the back of the crowd, "I will give
twenty dollars to buy him the girl's liberty," and straightway another
and another offered like sums for the same purpose until the amount
of the last bid had been reached, and the slave-master took it, and
the girl was free.
Then the poor negro, still holding his daughter by the hand, came
to Israel, with the tears dripping down his black cheeks, and said in
his broken way: "The blessing of Allah upon you, white brother, and if
you have a child of your own may you never lose her, but may Allah
favour her and let you keep her with you always!"
That blessing of the old black man was more than Israel could bear,
and, facing about before hearing the last of it, he turned down the
dark arcade that descends into the old town as into a vault, and
having crossed the markets, he came upon the second of the three
sights that were to smite out of his heart his pride towards God. A
man in a blue tunic girded with a red sash, and with a red cotton
handkerchief tied about his head, was driving a donkey laden with
trunks of light trees cut into short lengths to lie over its panniers.
He was clearly a Spanish woodseller and he had the weary, averted,
and downcast look of a race that is despised and kept under. His
donkey was a bony creature, with raw places on its flank and shoulders
where its hide had been worn by the friction of its burdens. He drove
it slowly; crying "Arrah!" to it in the tongue of its own country, and
not beating it cruelly. At the bottom of the arcade there was an open
place where a foul ditch was crossed by a rickety bridge. Coming to
this the man hesitated a moment, as if doubtful whether to drive his
donkey over it or to make the beast trudge through the water.
Concluding to cross the bridge, he cried "Arrah!" again, and drove
the donkey forward with one blow of his stick. But when the donkey
was in the middle of it, the rotten thing gave way, and the beast and
its burden fell into the ditch. The donkey's legs were broken, and
when a throng of Arabs, who gathered at the Spaniard's cry, had cut
away its panniers and dragged it out of the water on to the
paving-stones of the street, the film covered its eyes, and in a
moment it was dead.
At that the man knelt down beside it, and patted it on its neck,
and called on it by its name, as if unwilling to believe that it was
gone. And while the Arabs laughed at him for doing so--for none seemed
to pity him--a slatternly girl of sixteen or seventeen came scudding
down the arcade, and pushed her way through the crowd until she stood
where the dead ass lay with the man kneeling beside it. Then she fell
on the man with bitter reproaches. "Allah blot out your name, you
thief!" she cried. "You've killed the creature, and may you starve
and die yourself, you dog of a Nazarene!"
This was more than Israel could listen to, and he commanded the
girl to hold her peace. "Silence, you young wanton!" he cried, in a
voice of indignation. "Who are you, that you dare trample on the man
in his trouble?"
It turned out that the girl was the man's daughter, and he was a
renegade from Ceuta. And when she had gone off, cursing Israel and
his father and his grandfather, the poor fellow lifted his eyes to
Israel's face, and said, "You are very kind, my father. God bless
you! I may not be a good man, sir, and I've not lived a right life,
but it's hard when your own children are taught to despise you.
Better to lose them in their cradles, before they can speak to you to
curse you."
Israel's hair seemed to rise from his scalp at that word, and he
turned about and hurried away. Oh no, no, no! He was not, of all
men, the most sorely tried. Worse to be a slave, torn from the arms
he loves! Worse to be a father whose children join with his enemies
to curse him!
He had been wrong. What was wealth, that it was so noble a
sacrifice to part with it? Money was to give and to take, to buy and
to sell, and that was all. But love was for no market, and he who
lost it lost everything. And love was his, and would be his always,
for he loved Naomi, and she clung to him as the hyssop clings to the
wall. Let him walk humbly before God, for God was great.
Now these sights, though they reduced Israel's pride, increased
his cheerfulness, and he was going out at the gate with a humbler yet
lighter spirit, when he came upon a saint's house under the shadow of
the town walls. It was a small whitewashed enclosure, surmounted by a
white flag; and, as Israel passed it, the figure of a man came out to
the entrance. He was a poor, miserable creature--ragged, dirty, and
with dishevelled hair--and, seeing Israel's eyes upon him, he began to
talk in some wild way and in some unknown tongue that was only a
fierce jabber of sounds that had no words in them, and of words that
had no meaning. The poor soul was mad, and because he was distraught
he was counted a holy man among his people, and put to live in this
place, which was the tomb of a dead saint--though not more dead to the
ways of life was he who lay under the floor than he who lived above
it. The man continued his wild jabber as long as Israel's eyes were on
him, and Israel dropped two coins into his hand and passed on.
Oh no, no, no; Naomi was not the most afflicted of all God's
creatures. And yet, and yet, and yet, her bodily infirmities were but
the type and sign of how her soul was smitten.
On the hill outside the town the young Mahdi, with a great company
of his people, was waiting for him to bid him godspeed on his journey.
And then, while they walked some paces together before parting, and
the prophet talked of the poor followers of Absalam lying in the
prison at Shawan (for he had heard of them from Israel), Israel
himself mentioned Naomi.
"My father," he said, "there is something that I have not told
you."
"Tell it now, my son," said the Mahdi.
"I have a little daughter at home, and she is very sweet and
beautiful. You would never think how like sunshine she is to me in my
lonely house, for her mother is gone, and but for her I should be
alone, and so she is very near and dear to me. But she is in the land
of silence and in the land of night. Nothing can she see, and
nothing hear, and never has her voice opened the curtains of the air,
for she is blind and dumb and deaf."
"Merciful Allah!" cried the Mahdi.
"Ah! is her state so terrible? I thought you would think it so.
Yes, for all she is so beautiful, she is only as a creature of the
fields that knows not God."
"Allah preserve her!" cried the Mahdi.
"And she is smitten for my sin, for the Lord revealed it to me in
the vision, and my soul trembles for her soul. But if God has washed
me with water should not she also be clean?"
"God knows," said the Mahdi. "He gives no rewards for repentance."
"But listen!" said Israel. "In a vision of death her mother saw
her, and she was afflicted no more. No, for she could see, and hear,
and speak. Man of God, will it come to pass?"
"God is good," said the Mahdi. "He needs that no man should teach
Him pity."
"But I love her," cried Israel, "and I vowed to her mother to guard
her. She is joy of my joy and life of my life. Without her the
morning has no freshness and the night no rest. Surely the Lord sees
this, and will have mercy?"
The Mahdi held back his tears, and answered, "The Lord sees all.
Go your way in trust. Farewell!"
ISRAEL'S return home was an experience at all points the reverse
of his going abroad. He had seven dollars in the pocket of his
waistband on setting away from Fez, out of the three hundred and more
with which he had started from Tetuan. His men had gone on before him
and told their story. So the people whom he came upon by the way
either ignored him or jeered at him, and not one that on his coming
had run to do him honour now stepped aside that he might pass.
Two days after leaving Fez he came again to Wazzan. Women were
going home from market by the side of their camels, and
charcoal-burners were riding back to the country on the empty burdas
of their mules. It was nigh upon sunset when Israel entered the town,
and so exactly was everything the same that he could almost have
tricked himself and believed that scarce two minutes had passed since
he had left it. There at the fountains were the water-carriers waiting
with their water-skins, and there in the market-place sat the women
and children with their dishes of soup; there were the men by the
booths with their pipes ready charged with keef, and there was the
mooddin in the minaret, looking out over the plain. Everything was the
same save one thing, and that concerned Israel himself. No Grand
Shereef stood waiting to exchange horses with him, and no black guard
led him through the town. Footsore and dirty, covered with dust, and
tired, he walked through the streets alone. And when presently the
voice rang out overhead, and the breathless town broke instantly into
bubbles of sounds--the tinkling of the bells of the water-carriers,
the shouts of the children, and the calls of the men--only one man
seemed to see him and know him. This was an Arab, wearing scarcely
enough rags to cover his nakedness, who was bathing his hot cheeks in
water which a water-carrier was pouring into his hands, and he lifted
his glistening face as Israel passed, and called him "Dog!" and "Jew!"
and commanded him to uncover his feet.
Israel slept that night in one of the three squalid fondaks of
Wazzan inhabited by the Jews. His room was a sort of narrow box, in
a square court of many such boxes, with a handful of straw shaken over
the earth floor for a bed. On the doorpost the figure of a hand was
painted in red, and over the lintel there was a rude drawing of a
scorpion, with an imprecation written under it that purported to be
from the mouth of the Prophet Joshua, son of Nun. If the charm kept
evil spirits from the place of Israel's rest, it did not banish good
ones. Israel slept in that poor bed as he had never slept under the
purple canopy of his own chamber, and all night long one angel form
seemed to hover over him. It was Naomi. He could see her clearly.
They were together in a little cottage somewhere. The house was a
mean one, but jasmine and marjoram and pinks and roses grew outside of
it, and love grew inside. And Naomi! How bright were her eyes, for
they could see! Yes, and her ears could hear, and her tongue could
speak!
Two days after Israel left Wazzan he was back in the bashalic of
Tetuan. Each night he had dreamt the same dream, and though he knew
each morning when he awoke with a sigh that his dream was only a
reflection of his dead wife's vision, yet he could not help but think
of it the long day through. He tried to remember if he had ever seen
the cottage with his waking eyes, and where he had seen it, and to
recall the voice of Naomi as he had heard it in his dream, that he
might know if it was the same as he used to think he heard when he sat
by her in his stolen watches of the night while she lay asleep.
Sometimes when he reflected he thought he must be growing childish,
so foolish was his joy in looking forward to the night--for he had
almost grown in love with it--that he might dream his dream again.
But it was a dear, delicious folly, for it helped him to bear the
troubles of his journey, and they were neither light nor few. After
passing through El Kasar he had been robbed and stripped both of his
small remaining moneys and the better part of his clothes by a gang of
ruffians who had followed him out of the town. Then a good woman--the
old wife, turned into the servant of a Moor who had married a young
one--had taken pity on his condition and given him a disused Moorish
jellab. His misfortune had not been without its advantage. Being
forced to travel the rest of his way home in the disguise of a Moor,
he had heard himself discussed by his own people when they knew
nothing of his presence. Every evil that had befallen them had been
attributed to him. Ben Aboo, their Basha, was a good, humane man, who
was often driven to do that which his soul abhorred. It was Israel
ben Oliel who was their cruel taxmaster.
When Israel was within a day's journey of Tetuan a terrible scourge
fell upon the country. A plague of locusts came up like a dense cloud
from the direction of the desert, and ate up every leaf and blade of
grass that the scorching sun had left green, so that the plain over
which it had passed was as black and barren as a lava stream. The
farmers were impoverished, and the poorer people made beggars. Even
this last disaster they charged in their despair to Israel, for Allah
was now cursing them for Israel's sake. They were the same people
that had thrust their presents upon him when he was setting out.
At the lonesome hut of the old woman who had offered him a bowl of
buttermilk Israel rested and asked for a drink of water. She gave him
a dish of zummetta--barley roasted like coffee--and inquired if he was
going on to Tetuan. He told her yes, and she asked if his home was
there. And when he answered that it was, she looked at him again, and
said in a moving way, "Then Allah help you, brother."
"Why me more than another, sister?" said Israel.
"Because it is plain to see that you are a poor man," said the old
woman. "And that is the sort he is hardest upon."
Israel faltered and said, "He? Who, mother? Ah, you mean--"
"Who else but Israel the Jew?" said she, and then added, as by a
sudden afterthought, "But they say he is gone at last, and the Sultan
has stripped him. Well, Allah send us some one else soon to set right
this poor Gharb of ours! And what a man for poor men he might have
been--so wise and powerful!"
Israel listened with his head bent down, and, like a moth at the
flame, he could not help but play with the fire that scorched him.
"They tell me," he said, "that Allah has cursed him with a daughter
that has devils."
"Blind and dumb, poor soul," said the old woman; "but Allah has
pity for the afflicted--he is taking her away."
Israel rose. "Away?"
"She is ill since her father went to Fez."
"Ill?"
"Yes, I heard so yesterday--dying."
Israel made one loud cry like the cry of a beast that is
slaughtered, and fled out of the hut. Oh, fool of fools, why had he
been dallying with dreams--billing and cooing with his own
fancies--fondling and nuzzling and coddling them? Let all dreams
henceforth be dead and damned for ever; for only devils out of hell
had made them that poor men's souls might be staked and lost! Oh, why
had he not remembered the pale face of Naomi when he left her, and the
silence of her tongue that had used to laugh? Fool, fool! Why had he
ever left her at all?
With such thoughts Israel hurried along, sometimes running at his
utmost velocity, and then stopping dead short; sometimes shouting his
imprecations at the pitch of his voice and beating his fist against
the sharp aloes until it bled, and then whispering to himself in awe.
Would God not hear his prayer? God knew the child was very near
and dear to him, and also that he was a lonely man. "Have pity on a
lonely man, O God!" he whispered. "Let me keep my child; take all
else that I have, everything, no matter what! Only let me keep
her--yes, just as she is, let me have her still! Time was when I asked
more of Thee, but now I am humble, and ask that alone."
On his knees in a lonesome place, with the fierce sun beating down
on his uncovered head, amid the blackened leaves left by the locust,
he prayed this prayer, and then rose to his feet and ran.
When he got to Tetuan the white city was glistening under the
setting sun. Then he thought of his Moorish jellab, and looked at
himself, and saw that he was returning home like a beggar; and he
remembered with what splendour he had started out. Should he wait for
the darkness, and creep into his house under the cover of it? If the
thought had occurred an hour before he must have scouted it. Better to
brave the looks of every face in Tetuan than be kept back one minute
from Naomi. But now that he was so near he was afraid to go in; and
now that he was so soon to learn the truth he dreaded to hear it. So
he walked to and fro on the heath outside the town, paltering with
himself, struggling with himself, eating out his heart with eagerness,
trying to believe that he was waiting for the night.
The night came at length, and, under a deep-blue sky fast whitening
with thick stars, Israel passed unknown through the Moorish gate,
which was still open, and down the narrow lane to the market square.
At the gate of the Mellah, which was closed, he knocked, and demanded
entrance in the name of the Kaid. The Moorish guards who kept it fell
back at sight of him with looks of consternation.
"Israel!" cried one. and dropped his lantern.
Israel whispered, "Keep your tongue between your teeth!" and
hurried on.
At the door of his own house, which was also closed, he knocked
again, but more fearfully. The black woman Habeebah opened it
cautiously, and, seeing his jellab, she clashed it back in his face.
"Habeebah!" he cried, and he knocked once more.
Then Ali came to the door. "What Moorish man are you?" cried Ali,
pushing him back as he pressed forward.
"Ali! Hush! It is I--Israel."
Then Ali knew him and cried, "God save us! What has happened?"
"What has happened here?" said Israel. "Naomi," he faltered, "what
of her?"
"Then you have heard?" said Ali. "Thank God, she is now well."
Israel laughed--his laugh was like a scream.
"More than that--a strange thing has befallen her since you went
away," said Ali.
"What?"
"She can hear"
"It's a lie!" cried Israel, and he raised his hand and struck Ali
to the floor. But at the next minute he was lifting him up and sobbing
and saying, "Forgive me, my brave boy. I was mad, my son; I did not
know what I was doing. But do not torture me. If what you tell me is
true, there is no man so happy under heaven; but if it is false, there
is no fiend in hell need envy me."
And Ali answered through his tears, "It is true, my father--come
and see."
WHAT had happened at Israel's house during Israel's absence is a
story that may be quickly told. On the day of his departure Naomi
wandered from room to room, seeming to seek for what she could not
find, and in the evening the black women came upon her in the upper
chamber where her father had read to her at sunset, and she was
kneeling by his chair and the book was in her hands.
"Look at her, poor child," said Fatimah. "See, she thinks he will
come as usual. God bless her sweet innocent face!"
On the day following she stole out of the house into the town and
made her way to the Kasbah, and Ali found her in the apartments of
the wife of the Basha, who had lit upon her as she seemed to ramble
aimlessly through the courtyard from the Treasury to the Hall of
Justice, and from there to the gate of the prison.
The next day after that she did not attempt to go abroad, and
neither did she wander through the house, but sat in the same seat
constantly, and seemed to be waiting patiently. She was pale and
quiet and silent; she did not laugh according to her wont, and she had
a look of submission that was very touching to see.
"Now the holy saints have pity on the sweet jewel," said Fatimah.
"How long will she wait, poor darling?"
On the morning of the day following that her quiet had given place
to restlessness, and her pallor to a burning flush of the face. Her
hands were hot, her head was feverish, and her blind eyes were
bloodshot.
It was now plain that the girl was ill, and that Israel's fears on
setting out from home had been right after all. And making his own
reckoning with Naomi's condition, Ali went off for the only doctor
living in Tetuan--a Spanish druggist living in the walled lane leading
to the western gate. This good man came to look at Naomi, felt her
pulse, touched her throbbing forehead, with difficulty examined her
tongue, and pronounced her illness to be fever. He gave some homely
directions as to her treatment--for he despaired of administering
drugs to such a one as she was--and promised to return the next day.
About the middle of that night Naomi became delirious. Fatimah
stood constantly by her bed, bathing her hot forehead with vinegar and
water; Habeebah slept in a chair at her feet; and Ali crouched in a
corner outside the door of her room.
The druggist came in the morning, according to his promise; but
there was nothing to be done, so he looked wise, wagged his head very
solemnly, and said, "I will come again after two days more, when the
fever must be near to its height, and bring a famous leech out of
Tangier along with me!"
Meantime, Naomi's delirium continued. It was gentle as her own
spirit tent there. was this that was strange and eerie about her
unconsciousness--that whereas she had been dumb while her mind in its
dark cell must have been mistress of itself and of her soul, she spoke
without ceasing throughout the time of her reason's vanquishment. Not
that her poor tongue in its trouble uttered speech such as those that
heard could follow and understand, but only a restless babble of empty
sounds, yet with tones of varying feeling, sometimes of gladness,
sometimes of sorrow, sometimes of remonstrance, and sometimes of
entreaty.
All that night, and the next night also, the two black women sat
together by her bedside, holding each other's hands like little
children in great fear. Also Ali crouched again like a dog in the
darkness outside the door, listening in terror to the silvery young
voice that had never echoed in that house before. This was the night
when Israel, sleeping at the squalid inn of the Jews of Wazzan, was
hearing Naomi's voice in his dreams.
At the first glint of daylight in the morning the lad was up and
gone, and away through the town-gate to the heath beyond, as far as
to the fondak, which stands on the hill above it, that he might
strain his wet eyes in the pitiless sunlight for Israel's caravan
that should soon come. On the first morning he saw nothing, but on
the second morning he came upon Israel's men returning without him,
and telling their lying story that he had been stripped of everything
by the Sultan at Fez, and was coming behind them penniless.
Now, Israel was to Ali the greatest, noblest, mightiest man among
men. That he should fall was incredible, and that any man should say
he had fallen was an affront and an outrage. So, stripling as he was,
the lad faced the rascals with the courage of a lion. "Liars and
thieves!" he cried; "tell that story to another soul in Tetuan, and I
will go straight to the Kaid at the Kasbah, and have every black dog
of you all whipped through the streets for plundering my master."
The men shouted in derision and passed on, firing their matchlocks
as a mock salute. But Ali had his will of them; they told their tale
no more, and when they entered Tetuan, and their fellows questioned
them concerning their journey, they took refuge in the reticence that
sits by right of nature on the tongues of Moors--they said and knew
nothing.
While Ali was on the heath looking out for Israel, the doctor out
of Tangier came to Naomi. The girl was still unconscious, and the
wise leech shook his head over her. Her case was hopeless; she was
sinking--in plain words, she was dying--and if her father did not come
before the morrow he would come too late to find her alive.
Then the black women fell to weeping and wailing, and after that
to spiritual conflict. Both were born in Islam, but Fatimah had
secretly become a Jewess by persuasion of her mistress who was dead.
She was, therefore, for sending for the Chacham. But Habeebah had
remained a Muslim, and she was for calling the Imam. "The Imam is
good, the Imam is holy; who so good and holy as the Imam?" "Nay, but
our Sidi holds not with the Imam, for our lord is a Jew,and our lord
is our master, our lord is our sultan, our lord is our king." "Shoof!
What is Sidi against paradise? And paradise is for her who makes a
follower of Moosa into a follower of Mohammed. Let but the child die
with the Kelmah on her lips, and we are all three blest for
ever--otherwise we will burn everlastingly in the fires of Jehinnum."
"But, alack! how can the poor girl say the Kelmah, being as dumb as
the grave?" "Then how can she say the Shemang either?"
Having heard the verdict of the doctor, Ali returned in hot haste
and silenced both the bondwomen: "The Imam is a villain, and the
Chacham is a thief." There was only one good man left in Tetuan, and
that was his own Taleb, his schoolmaster, the same that had taught him
the harp in the days of the Governor's marriage. This person was an
old negro, bewrinkled by years, becrippled by ague, once stone deaf,
and still partially so, half blind, and reputed to be only half wise,
a liberated slave from the Sahara, just able to read the Koran and
the Torah, and willing to teach either impartially, according to his
knowledge, for he was neither a Jew nor a Muslim, but a little of
both, as he used to say, and not too much of either. For such a hybrid
in a land of intolerance there must have been no place save the
dungeons of the Kasbah, but that this good nondescript was a
privileged pet of everbody. In his dark cellar, down an alley by the
side of the Grand Mosque in the Metamar, he had sat from early morning
until sunset, year in year out, through thirty years on his
rush-covered floor, among successive generations of his boys; and as
often as night fell he had gone hither and thither among the sick and
dying, carrying comfort of kind words, and often meat and drink of his
meagre substance.
Such was Ali's hero after Israel, and now, in Israel's absence and
his own great trouble, he tried away for him.
"Father," cried the lad," does it not say in the good book that
the prayer of a righteous man availeth much?"
"It does, my son," said the Taleb "You have truth. What then?"
"Then if you will pray for Naomi she will recover," said Ali.
It was a sweet instance of simple faith. The old black Taleb
dismissed his scholars, closed down his shutter, locked it with a
padlock, hobbled to Naomi's bedside in his tattered white selham,
looked down at her through the big spectacles that sprawled over his
broad black nose, and then, while a dim mist floated between the
spectacles and his eyes, and a great lump rose at his throat to choke
him, he fell to the floor and prayed, and Ali and the black women
knelt beside him.
The negro's prayer was simple to childishness. It told God
everything; it recited the facts to the heavenly Father as to one who
was far away and might not know. The maiden was sick unto death. She
had been three days and nights knowing no one, and eating and drinking
nothing. She was blind and dumb and deaf. Her father loved her and
was wrapped up in her. She was his only child, and his wife was
dead, and he was a lonely man. He was away from his home now, and if,
when he returned, the girl were gone and lost--if she were dead and
buried--his strong heart would be broken and his very soul in peril.
Such was the Taleb's prayer, and such was the scene of it--the dumb
angel of white and crimson turning and tossing on the bed in an
aureole of her streaming yellow hair, and the four black faces about
her, eager and hot and aflame, with closed eyelids and open lips,
calling down mercy out of heaven from the God that might be seen by
the soul alone.
And so it was, but whether by chance or Providence let no man dare
to tell, that even while the four black people were yet on their knees
by the bed, the turning and tossing of the white face stopped suddenly
and Naomi lay still on her pillow. The hot flush faded from her
cheeks; her features, which had twitched, were quiet; and her hands,
which had been restless, lay at peace on the counterpane.
The good old Taleb took this for an answer to his prayer, and he
shouted "El hamdu l'Illah!" (Praise be to God), while the big drops
coursed down the deep furrows of his streaming face. And then, as if
to complete the miracle, and to establish the old man's faith in it,
a strange and wondrous thing befell. First, a thin watery humour
flowed from one of Naomi's ears, and after that she raised herself on
her elbow. Her eyes were open as if they saw; her lips were parted as
though they were breaking into a smile; she made a long sigh like one
who has slept softly through the night and has just awakened in the
morning.
Then, while the black people held their breath in their first
moment of surprise and gladness, her parted lips gave forth a sound.
It was a laugh--a faint, broken, bankrupt echo of her old happy
laughter. And then instantly, almost before the others had heard the
sound, and while the notes of it were yet coming from her tongue, she
lifted her idle hand and covered her ear, and over her face there
passed a look of dread.
So swift had this change been that the bondwomen had not seen it,
and they were shouting "Hallelujah!" with one voice, thinking only
that she who had been dead to them was alive again. But the old Taleb
cried eagerly, "Hush! my children, hush! What is coming is a
marvellous thing! I know what it is--who knows so well as I? Once I
was deaf, my children, but now I hear. Listen! The maiden has had
fever--fever of the brain. Listen! A watery humour had gathered in
her head. It has gone, it has flowed away. Now she will hear.
Listen, for it is I that know it--who knows it so well as I? Yes;
she will be no longer deaf. Her ears will be opened. She will hear.
Once she was living in a land of silence; now she is coming into the
land of sound. Blessed be God, for He has wrought this wondrous work.
God is great! God is mighty! Praise the merciful God for ever! El
hamdu l'Illah!"
And marvellous and passing belief as the old Taleb's story seemed
to be, it appeared to be coming to pass, for even while he spoke,
beginning in a slow whisper and going on with quicker and louder
breath, Naomi turned her face full upon him; and when the black women
in their ready faith, joined in his shouts of praise, she turned her
face towards them also; and wherever a voice sounded in the room she
inclined her head towards it as one who knew the direction of the
sounds, and also as one who was in fear of them.
But, seeing nothing of her look of pain, and knowing nothing but
one thing only, and that was the wondrous and mighty change that she
who had been deaf could now hear, that she who had never before heard
speech now heard their voices as they spoke around her, Ali, in his
frantic delight laughing and crying together, his white teeth
aglitter, and his round black face shining with tears, began to shout
and to sing, and to dance around the bed in wild joy at the miracle
which God had wrought in answer to his old Taleb's prayer. No heed did
he pay to the Taleb's cries of warning, but danced on and on, and
neither did the bondwomen see the old man's uplifted arms or his big
lips pursed out in hushes, so overpowered were they with their
delight, so startled and so joy drunken. But over their tumult there
came a wild outburst of piercing shrieks. They were the cries of
Naomi in her blind and sudden terror at the first sounds that had
reached her of human voices. Her face was blanched, her eyelids were
trembling, her lips were restless, her nostrils quivered, her whole
being seemed to be overcome by a vertigo of dread, and, in the
horrible disarray of all her sensations her brain, on its wakening
from its dolorous sleep of three delirious days, was tottering and
reeling at its welcome in this world of noise.
Then Ali ended suddenly his frantic dance, the bondwomen held their
peace in an instant, and blank silence in the chamber followed the
clamour of tongues.
It was at this great moment that Israel, returning from his journey
in the jellab of a Moor, knocked like a stranger at his outer door.
When he entered the chamber, still clad as a torn and ragged man, too
eager to remove the sorry garments which had been given to him on the
way, Naomi was resting against the pillar of the bed. He saw that her
countenance was changed, and that every feature of her face seemed to
listen. No longer was it as the face of a lamb that is simple and
content, neither was it as the face of a child that is peaceful and
happy; but it was hot and perplexed. Fear sat on her face, and wonder
and questioning; and as Fatimah stood by her side, speaking tender
words to comfort her, no cheer did she seem to get from them, but only
dread, for she drew away from her when she spoke, as though the sound
of the voice smote her ears with terror of trouble. All this Israel
saw on the instant, and then his sight grew dim, his heart beat as if
it would kill him, a thick mist seemed to cover everything, and
through the dense waves of semi-consciousness he heard the dull hum of
Fatimah's muffled voice coming to him as from far away.
"My pretty Naomi! My little heart! My sweet jewel of gold and
silver! It is nothing! Nothing! Look! See! Her father has come
back! Her dear father has come back to her!"
Presently the room ceased to go round and round, and Israel knew
that Naomi's arms surrounded him, that his own arms enlaced her, and
that her head was pressed hard against his bosom. Yes, it was she! It
was Naomi! Ali had told him truth. She lived! She was well! She
could hear! The old hope that had chirped in his soul was justified,
and the dear delicious dream was come true. Oh! God was great, God
was good, God had given him more than he had asked or deserved!
Thus for some minutes he stood motionless, blessing the God of
Jacob, yet uttering no words, for his heart was too full for speech,
only holding Naomi closely to him, while his tears fell on her blind
face. And the black people in the chamber wept to see it, that not
more dumb in that great hour of gladness was she who was born so than
he to whose house had come the wonderful work that God had wrought.
No heed had Israel given yet to the bodeful signs in Naomi's face,
in joy over such as were joyful. When he had taken her in his arms
she had known him, and she had clung to him in her glad surprise. But
when she continued to lie on his bosom it was not only because he was
her father and she loved him, and because he had been lost to her and
was found, it was also because he alone was silent of all that were
about her.
When he saw this his heart was humbled; but he understood her
fears, that, coming out of a land of great silence, where the voice
of man was never heard, where the air was songless as the air of
dreams and darkling as the air of a tomb, her soul misgave her, and
her spirit trembled in a new world of strange sounds. For what was the
ear but a little dark chamber, a vault, a dungeon in a castle, wherein
the soul was ever passing to and fro, asking for news of the world
without? Through seventeen dark and silent years the soul of Naomi
had been passing and repassing within its beautiful tabernacle of
flesh, crying daily and hourly, "Watchman, what of the world?" At
length it had found an answer, and it was terrified. The world had
spoken to her soul and its voice was like the reverberations of a
subterranean cavern, strange and deep and awful.
In that first moment of Israel's consciousness after he entered the
room, all four black folks seemed to be speaking together.
Ali was saying, "Father, those dogs and thieves of tentmen and
muleteers returned yesterday, and said--"
And the bondwomen were crying, "Sidi, you were right when you went
away!" "Yes, the dear child was ill!" "Oh, how she missed you when
you were gone." "She has been delirious, and the doctor, the son of
Tetuan--"
And the old Taleb was muttering, "Master, it is all by God's mercy.
We prayed for the life of the maiden, and lo! He has given us this
gateway to her spirit as well."
Then Israel saw that as their voices entered the dark vault of
Naomi's ears they startled and distressed her. So, to pacify her, he
motioned them out of the chamber. They went away without a word. The
reason of Naomi's fears began to dawn upon them. An awe seemed to be
cast over her by the solemnity of that great moment. It was like to
the birth-moment of a soul.
And when the black people were gone from the room, Israel closed
the door of it that he might shut out the noises of the streets, for
women were calling to their children without, and the children were
still shouting in their play. This being done, he returned to Naomi
and rested her head against his bosom and soothed her with his hand,
and she put her arms about his neck and clung to him. And while he
did so his heart yearned to speak to her, and to see by her face that
she could hear. Let it be but one word, only one, that she might know
her father's voice--for she had never once heard it--and answer it
with a smile.
"Daughter! My dearest! My darling."
Only this, nothing more! Only one sweet word of all the unspoken
tenderness which, like a river without any outlet, had been seventeen
years dammed up in his breast. But no, it could not be. He must not
speak lest her face should frown and her arms be drawn away. To see
that would break his heart. Nevertheless, he wrestled with the
temptation. It was terrible. He dared not risk it. So he sat on the
bed in silence, hardly moving, scarcely breathing--a dust-laden man in
a ragged jellab, holding Naomi in his arms.
It was still the month of Ramadhan, and the sun was but three hours
set. In the fondak called El Oosaa, a group of the town Moors, who
had fasted through the day, were feasting and carousing. Over the
walls of the Mellah, from the direction of the Spanish inn at the
entrance to the little tortuous quarter of the shoemakers, there came
at intervals a hubbub of voices, and occasionally wild shouts and
cries. The day was Wednesday, the market-day of Tetuan, and on the
open space called the Feddan many fires were lighted at the mouths of
tents, and men and women and children--country Arabs and Barbers--were
squatting around the charcoal embers eating and drinking and talking
and laughing, while the ruddy glow lit up their swarthy faces in the
darkness. But presently the wing of night fell over both Moorish town
and Mellah; the traffic of the streets came to an end; the "Balak" of
the ass-driver was no more heard, the slipper of the Jew sounded but
rarely on the pavement, the fires on the Feddan died out, the hubbub
of the fondak and the wild shouts of the shoemakers' quarter were
hushed, and quieter and more quiet grew the air until all was still.
At the coming of peace Naomi's fears seemed to abate. Her clinging
arms released their hold of her father's neck, and with a trembling
sigh she dropped back on to the pillow. And in this hour of stillness
she would have slept; but even while Israel was lifting up his heart
in thankfulness to God, that He was making the way of her great
journey easy out of the land of silence into the land of speech, a
storm broke over the town. Through many hot days preceding it had
been gathering in the air, which had the echoing hollowness of a
vault. It was loud and long and terrible. First from the direction
of Marteel, over the four miles which divide Tetuan from the coast,
came the warning which the sea sends before trouble comes to the
land--a deep moan as of waters falling from the sky. Next came the
moan of the wind down the valley that opens on the gate called the Bab
el Marsa, and along the river that flows to the port. Then came the
roll of thunder, like a million cannons, down the gorges of the Reef
mountains and across the plain that stretches far away to Kitan. Last
of all, the black clouds of the sky emptied themselves over the town,
and the rain fell in floods on the roof of the house and on the
pavement of the patio, and leapt up again in great loud drops, making
a noise to the ear like to the tramp, tramp, tramp of a hidden
multitude. Thus sound after sound broke over the darkness of the night
in a thousand awful voices, now near, now far, now loud, now low, now
long, now short, now rising, now falling, now rushing, now running--a
mighty tumult and a fearsome anarchy.
At last Naomi's terror was redoubled. Every sound seemed to smite
her body as a blow. Hitherto she had known one sense only, the sense
of touch, and though now she knew the sense of hearing also, she
continued to refer all sensations to feeling. At the sound of the sea
she put out her arms before her; at the sound of the wind she buried
her face in her palms; and at the sound of the thunder she lifted her
hands as if to protect her head.
Meanwhile, Israel sat beside her and cherished her close at his
bosom. He yearned to speak words of comfort to her, soft words of
cheer, tender words of love, gentle words of hope.
"Be not afraid, my daughter! It is only the wind, it is only the
rain; it is only the thunder. Once you loved to run and race in them.
They shall not harm you, for God is good, and He will keep you safe.
There, there, my little heart! See, your father is with you. He will
guard you. Fear not, my child, fear not!"
Such were the words which Israel yearned to speak in Naomi's ears,
but, alas! what words could she understand any more than the wind
which moaned about the house and the thunder which rolled overhead?
And again and again, alas! as surely as he spoke to her she must
shrink from the solace of his voice even as she shrank from the tumult
of the voices of the storm.
Israel fell back helpless and heartbroken. He began to see in its
fulness the change which had befallen Naomi, yet not at once to
realise it, so sudden and so numbing was the stroke. He began to know
that with the mighty blessing for which he had hoped and prayed--the
blessing of a pathway to his daughter's soul--a misfortune had come as
well. What was it to him now that Naomi had ears to hear if she could
not understand? And what was this tempest to the maiden new-born out
of the land of silence into the world of sound, yet still both blind
and dumb, but a circle of darkness alive with creatures that groaned
and cried and shrieked and moved around her?
Thus nothing could Israel do but watch the creeping of Naomi's
terror, and smooth her forehead and chafe her hands. And this he did,
until at length, in a fresh outbreak of the storm, when the vault of
the heavens seemed rent asunder, a strong delirium took hold of her,
and she fell into a long unconsciousness. Then Israel held back his
heart no longer, but wept above her, and called to her, and cried
aloud upon her name--
"Naomi! Naomi! My poor child! My dearest! Hear me! It is
nothing! nothing! Listen! It is gone! Gone!"
With such passionate cries of love and sorrow; Israel gave vent to
his soul in its trouble. And while Naomi lay in her unconsciousness,
he knew not what feelings possessed him, for his heart was in a great
turmoil. Desolate! desolate! All was desolate! His high-built hopes
were in ashes!
Sometimes he remembered the days when the child knew no sorrow,
and when grief came not near her, when she was brighter than the sun
which she could not see and sweeter than the songs which she could
not hear, when she was joyous as a bird in its narrow cage and fretted
not at the bars which bound her, when she laughed as she braided her
hair and came dancing out of her chamber at dawn. And remembering
this, he looked down at her knitted face, and his heart grew bitter,
and he lifted up his voice through the tumult of the storm, and cried
again on the God of Jacob, and rebuked Him for the marvellous work
which He had wrought.
If God were an almighty God, surely He looked before and after,
and foresaw what must come to pass. And, foreseeing and knowing all,
why had God answered his prayer? He himself had been a fool. Why had
he craved God's pity? Once his poor child was blither than the
panther of the wilderness and happier than the young lamb that sports
in springtime. If she was blind, she knew not what it was to see; and
if she was deaf, she knew not what it was to hear; and if she was
dumb, she knew not what it was to speak. Nothing did she miss of sight
or sound or speech any more than of the wings of the eagle or the
dove. Yet he would not be content; he would not be appeased. Oh!
subtlety of the devil which had brought this evil upon him!
But the God whom Israel in his agony and his madness rebuked in
this manner sent His angel to make a great silence, and the storm
lapsed to a breathless quiet.
And when the tempest was gone Naomi's delirium passed away. She
seemed to look, and nothing could she see; and then to listen, and
nothing could she hear; and then she clasped the hand of her father
that lay over her hand, and sighed and sank down again.
"Ah!"
It was even as if peace had come to her with the thought that she
was back in the land of great silence once again, and that the voices
which had startled her, and the storm which had terrified her, had
been nothing but an evil dream.
In that sweet respite she fell asleep, and Israel forgot the
reproaches with which he had reproached his God, and looked tenderly
down at her, and said within himself, "It was her baptism. Now she
will walk the world with confidence, and never again will she be
afraid. Truly the Lord our God is king over all kingdoms and wise
beyond all wisdom!"
Then, with one look backward at Naomi where she slept, he crept out
of the room on tiptoe.
With the coming of the gift of hearing, the other gifts with which
Naomi had been gifted in her deafness, and the strange graces with
which she had been graced, seemed suddenly to fall from her as a
garment when she disrobed.
It seemed as though her old sense of touch had become confused by
her new sense of hearing, She lost her way in her father's house, and
though she could now hear footsteps, she did not appear to know who
approached. They led her into the street, into the Feddan, into the
walled lane to the great gate, into the steep arcades leading to the
Kasbah; and no more as of old did she thread her way through the
people, seeming to see them through the flesh of her face and to
salute them with the laugh on her lips, but only followed on and on
with helpless footsteps. They took her to the hill above the battery,
and her breath came quick as she trod the familiar ways; but when she
was come to the summit, no longer did she exult in her lofty place and
drink new life from the rush of mighty winds about her, but only
quaked like a child in terror as she faced the world unseen beneath
and hearkened to the voices rising out of it, and heard the breeze
that had once laved her cheeks now screaming in her ears. They gave
Ali's harp into her hands, the same that she had played so strangely
at the Kasbah on the marriage of Ben Aboo; but never again as on that
day did she sweep the strings to wild rhapsodies of sound such as none
had heard before and none could follow, but only touched and fumbled
them with deftless fingers that knew no music.
She lost her old power to guide her footsteps and to minister to
her pleasures and to cherish her affections. No longer did she seem
to communicate with Nature by other organs than did the rest of the
human kind. She was a radiant and joyous spirit maid no more, but
only a beautiful blind girl, a sweet human sister that was weak and
faint.
Nevertheless, Israel recked nothing of her weakness, for joy at
the loss of those powers over which his enemies throughout seventeen
evil years had bleated and barked "Beelzebub!" And if God in His
mercy had taken the angel out of his house, so strangely gifted, so
strangely joyful, He had given him instead, for the hunger of his
heart as a man, a sweet human daughter, however helpless and frail.
Thus in the first days of Naomi's great change Israel was content.
But day by day this contentment left him, and he was haunted by
strange sinkings of the heart. Naomi's frailty appeared to be not
only of the body but also of the spirit. It seemed as if her soul had
suddenly fallen asleep. She betrayed neither joy nor sorrow. No sound
escaped her lips; no thought for herself or for others seemed to
animate her. She neither laughed nor wept. When Israel kissed her
pale brow, she did not stretch out her arms as she had done before to
draw down his head to her lips. Calmly, silently, sadly, gracefully,
she passed from day to day, without feeling and without thought--a
beautiful statue of flesh and blood.
What God was doing with her slumbering spirit then, only He Himself
knows; but the time of her awakening came, and with it came her first
delight in the new gift with which God had gifted her.
To revive her spirits and to quicken her memory, Israel had taken
her to walk in the fields outside the town where she had loved to play
in her childhood--the wild places covered with the peppermint and the
pink, the thyme, the marjoram, and the white broom, where she had
gathered flowers in the old times, when God had taught her. The day
was sweet, for it was the cool of the morning, the air was soft, and
the wind was gentle, and under the shady trees the covert of the reeds
lay quiet. And whither Naomi would, thither they had wandered,
without object and without direction.
On and on, hand in hand, they had walked through the winding paths
of the oleander, between the creeping fences of the broom, and the
sprawling limbs of the prickly pear, until they came to a stream, a
tributary of the Marteel, trickling down from the wild heights of the
Akhmas, over the light pebbles of its narrow bed. And there--but by
what impulse or what chance Israel never knew--Naomi had withdrawn her
hand from his hand; and at the next moment, in scarcely more time than
it took him to stoop to the ground and rise again, suddenly as if she
had sunk into the earth, or been lifted into the sky, Naomi
disappeared from his sight.
Israel pushed the low boughs apart, expecting to find her by his
side, but she was nowhere near. He called her by her name, thinking
she would answer with the only language of her lips, the old language
of her laugh.
"Naomi! Naomi! Come, come, my child, where are you?"
But no sound came back to him.
Again he called, not as before in a tone of remonstrance, but with
a voice of fear.
"Naomi, Naomi! Where are you? where? where?"
Then he listened and waited, yet heard nothing, neither her laugh
nor the rustle of her robe, nor the light beat of her footstep.
Nevertheless, she had passed over the grass from the spot where
she had left him, without waywardness or thought of evil, only missing
his hand and trying to recover it, then becoming afraid and walking
rapidly, until the dense foliage between them had hidden her from
sight and deadened the sound of his voice.
Opening a way between the long leaves of an aloe, Israel found her
at length in the place whereto she had wandered. It was a short bend
of the brook, where dark old trees overshadowed the water with forest
gloom. She was seated on the trunk of a fallen oak, and it seemed as
if she had sat herself down to weep in her dumb trouble, for her blind
eyes were still wet with tears. The river was murmuring at her feet;
an old olive-tree over her head was pattering with its multitudinous
tongues; the little family of a squirrel was chirping by her side, and
one tiny creature of the brood was squirling up her dress; a thrush
was swinging itself on the low bough of the olive and singing as it
swung, and a sheep of solemn face--gaunt and grim and ancient--was
standing and palpitating before her. Bees were humming, grasshoppers
were buzzing, the light wind was whispering, and cattle were lowing in
the distance. The air of that sweet spot in that sweet hour was
musical with every sweet sound of the earth and sky, and fragrant
with all the wild odours of the wood.
"My darling," cried Israel in the first outburst of his relief,
and then he paused and looked at her again.
The wet eyes were open, and they appeared to see, so radiant was
the light that shone in them. A tender smile played about her mouth;
her head was held forward; her nostrils quivered; and her cheeks were
flushed. She had pushed her hat back from her head, and her yellow
hair had fallen over her neck and breast. One of her hands covered one
ear, and the other strayed among the plants that grew on the bank
beside her. She seemed to be listening intently, eagerly,
rapturously. A rare and radiant joy, a pure and tender delight,
appeared to gush out of her beautiful face. It was almost as though
she believed that everything she heard with the great new gift which
God had given her was speaking to her, and bidding her welcome and
offering her love; as if the garrulous old olive over her head were
stretching down his arms to sport with her hair, and pattering; "Kiss
me, little one! kiss me, sweet one! kiss me! kiss me!"--as if the
rippling river at her feet were laughing and crying, "Catch me, naked
feet! catch me, catch me!" as if the thrush on the bough were singing,
"Where from, sunny locks? where from? where from?--as if the young
squirrel were chirping, "I'm not afraid, not afraid, not afraid!" and
as if the grey old sheep were breathing slowly, "Pat me, little
maiden! you may, you may!"
"God bless her beautiful face!" cried Israel. "She listens with
every feature and every line of it."
It was the awakening of her soul to the soul of music, and from
that day forward she took pleasure in all sweet and gentle sounds
whatsoever--in the voices of children at play--in the bleat of the
goat--in the footsteps of them she loved--in the hiss and whirr of her
mother's old spinning-wheel, which now she learned to work--and in
Ali's harp, when he played it in the patio in the cool of the evening.
But even as no eye can see how the seed which has been sown in the
ground first dies and then springs into life, so no tongue can tell
what change was wrought in the pure soul of Naomi when, after her
baptism of sound, the sweet voices of earth first entered it. Neither
she herself nor any one else ever fully realised what that change was,
for it was a beautiful and holy mystery. It was also a great joy,
and she seemed to give herself up to it. No music ever escaped her,
and of all human music she took most pleasure in the singing of love
songs. These she listened to with a simple and rapt delight; their
joy seemed to answer to her joy, and the joyousness of a song of love
seemed to gather in the air wheresoever she went.
There were few of the kind she ever heard, and few of that few were
beautiful, and none were beautifully sung. Fatimah's homely ditties
were all she knew, the same that had been crooned to her a thousand
times when she had not heard. Most of these were songs of the desert
and the caravan, telling of musk and ambergris, and odorous locks and
dancing cypress, and liquid ruby, and lips like wine; and some were
warm tales which the good soul herself hardly understood, of
enchanting beauties whose silence was the door of consent, and of
wanton nymphs whose love tore the veil of their chastity.
But one of them was a song of pure and true passion that seemed to
be the yearning cry of a hungering, unfilled, unsatisfied heart to
call down love out of the skies, or else be carried up to it. This
had been a favourite song of Naomi's mother, and it was from Ruth
that Fatimah had learned it in those anxious watches of the early
uncertain days when she sang it over the cradle to her babe that was
deaf after all and did not hear. Naomi knew nothing of this, but she
heard her mother's song at last, though silent were the lips that
first sang it, and it was her chief and dear delight.
O, where is Love?
Where, where is Love?
Is it of heavenly birth?
Is it a thing of earth?
Where, where is Love?
In her crazy, creechy voice the black woman would sing the song,
when Israel was out of hearing; and the joy Naomi found in it, and
the simple silent arts she used, being mute and blind, to show her
pleasure while it lasted, and to ask for it again when it was done,
were very sweet and touching.
And so it came about at last, that even as the human mother loves
that child most among many children that most is helpless, so the
earth-mother of Naomi made her ears more keen because her eyes were
blind. Thus she seemed to hear many things that are unheard by the
rest of the human family. It is only a dim echo of the outer world
that the ears of men are allowed to hear, just as it is only a dim
shadow of the outer world that the eyes of men are allowed to see;
but the ears of Naomi seemed to hear all.
There is one hearing of men, and another hearing of the beasts,
and a third of the birds, and one hearing differs from another in
keenness even as one sight differs from another in strength. And all
the earth is full of voices, and everything that moves upon the face
of it has its sound; but the bird hears that which is unheard of the
beast, and the beast hears that which is unheard of men. But Naomi
appeared to hear all that is heard of each.
Listening hour after hour, listening always, listening only, with
nothing that she could do but listen, nothing moved on the ground but
she dropped her face, and nothing flew in the sky but she lifted her
eyes. And whereas before the coming of her great gift her face had
been all feeling, and she seemed to feel the sunset, and to feel the
sky, and to feel the thunder and the light, now her face was all
hearing, and her whole body seemed to hear, for she was like a living
soul floating always in a sea of sound.
Thus, day after day, she was busy in her silence and in her
darkness, building up notions of man and of the world by the new gift
with which God had gifted her; but what strange thing the earth was
to her then, what the sun was with its warmth, and what the sea was
with its roar, and what the face of man was, and the eyes of woman,
none could know, and neither could she tell, for her soul was not
linked to other souls--soul to soul, in the chains of speech.
And for all that she could not answer; yet Israel did not forget
that, beside the sounds of earth and sky, Naomi was hearing words,
and that words had wings, and were alive, and, for good or ill, made
their mark on the soul that listened to them. So he continued to read
to her out of the Book of the Law, day after day at sunset, according
to his wont and custom. And when an evil spirit seemed to make a mock
at him, and to say, "Fool! she hears, but does she understand?" he
remembered how he had read to her in the days of her deafness, and he
said to himself, "Shall I have less faith now that she can hear?"
But, though he turned his back on the temptation to let go of
Naomi's soul at last, yet sometimes his heart misgave him; for when he
spoke to her it seemed to him that he was like a man that shouts into
a cavern and gets back no answer but the sound of his own voice. If
he told her of the sky, that it was broad as the ocean, what could she
see of the great deeps to measure them? And if he told her of the
sea, that it was green as the fields, what could she see of the grass
to know its colour? And sometimes as he spoke to her it smote him
suddenly that the words themselves which he used to speak with were no
more to Naomi than the notes which Ali struck from his dead harp, or
the bleat of the goat at her feet.
Nevertheless, his faith was great, and he said in his heart, "Let
the Lord find His own way to her spirit." So he continued to speak
with her as often as he was near her, telling her of the little things
that concerned their household, as well as of the greater things it
was good for her soul to know.
It was a touching sight--the lonely man, the outcast among his
people, talking with his daughter though she was blind and dumb,
telling her of God, of heaven, of death and resurrection, strong in
his faith that his words would not fail, but that the casket of her
soul would be opened to receive them, and that they would lie within
until the great day of judgment, when the Lord Himself would call for
them.
Did Naomi hear his words to understand them, or did they fall dead
on her ear like birds on a dead sea? In her darkness and her silence
was she putting them together, comparing them, interpreting them,
pondering them, imitating them, gathering food for her mind from them,
and solace for her spirit? Israel did not know; and, watch her face
as he would, he could never learn. Hope! Faith! Trust! What else
was left to him? He clung to all three, he grappled them to him; they
were his sheet-anchor and his pole-star. But one day they seemed to
be his calenture also--the false picture of green fields and sweet
female faces that rises before the eye of the sailor becalmed at sea.
It was some three weeks after his return from his journey, and the
fierce blaze of the sun continued. The storm that had broken over the
town had left no results of coolness or moisture, for the ground had
been baked hard, and the rain had been too short and swift to
penetrate it. And what the withering heat had spared of green leaf
and shrub a deadlier blight had swept away. The locusts had lately
come up from the south and the east, in numbers exceeding imagination,
millions on millions, making the air dark as they passed and obscuring
the blue sky. They had swept the country of its verdure, and left a
trail of desolation behind them. The grass was gone, the bark of the
olives and almonds was stripped away, and the bare trees had the look
of winter.
The first to feel the plague had been the cattle and beasts of
burden. Without food to eat or water to drink they had died in
hundreds. A Mukabar, a cemetery, was made for the animals outside the
walls of the town. It was a charnel yard on the hill-side, near to
one of the town's six gates. The dead creatures were not buried
there, but merely cast on the bare ground to rot and to bleach in the
sun and the heated wind. It was a horrible place.
The skinny dogs of the town soon found it. And after these
scavengers of the East had torn the putrefying flesh and gnawed the
multitude of bones, they prowled around the country, with tongues
lolling out, in search of water. By this time there was none that
they could come at nearer than the sea, and that was salt.
Nevertheless, they lapped it, so burning was their thirst, and went
mad, and came back to the town. Then the people hunted them and killed
them.
Now, it chanced that a mad dog from the Mukabar was being hunted to
death on a day when Naomi, who had become accustomed to the tumult of
the streets, had first ventured out in them alone, save for her goat,
that went before her. The goat was grown old, but it was still her
constant companion and also it was now her guide and guardian, for the
little dumb creature seemed to know that she was frail and helpless.
And so it was that she was crossing the Sok el Foki, a market of the
town, and hearkening only to the patter of the feet of the goat going
in front, when suddenly she heard a hundred footsteps hurrying towards
her, with shouts and curses that were loud and deep. She stood in fear
on the spot where she was, and no eyes had she to see what happened
next, and she had none save the goat to tell her.
But out of one of the dark arcades on the left, leading downward
from the hill, the mad dog came running, before a multitude of men
and boys. And flying in its despair, it bit out wildly at whatever
lay in its way, and Naomi, in her blindness, stood straight in front
of it. Then she must have fallen before it, but instantly the goat
flung itself across the dog's open jaws, and butted at its foaming
teeth, and sent up shrill cries of terror.
The dog stopped a moment, for such love was human, and it seemed as
if the madness of the monster shrank before it. But the people came
down with their wild shouts and curses, and the dog sprang upon the
goat and felled it, and fled away. The people followed it, and then
Naomi was alone in the market-place, and the goat lay at her feet.
Ali found her there, and brought her home to her father's house in
the Mellah, and her dying champion with her. And out of this hard
chance, and not out of Israel's teaching, Naomi was first to learn
what life is and what is death. She felt the goat with her hands, and
as she did so her fingers shook. Then she lifted it to its feet, and
when they slipped from under it she raised her white face in wonder.
Again she lifted it, and made strange noises at its ear; but when it
did not answer with its bleat her lips began to tremble. Then she
listened for its breathing, and felt for its breath; but when neither
the one came to her ear, nor the other to her cheek, her own breath
beat hot and fast. At length she fondled it in her arms, and kissed
it with her lips; and when it gave back no sign of motion nor any
sound of voice, a wild labouring rose at her heart. At last, when the
power of life was low in it, the goat opened its heavy eyes upon her
and put forth its tongue and licked her hand. With that last farewell
the brave heart of the little creature broke, and it stretched itself
and died.
Israel saw it all. His heart bled to see the parting in silence
between those two, for not more dumb was the goat that now was dead
than the human soul that was left alive. He tried to put the goat
from Naomi's arms, saying, "It was only a goat, my child; think of it
no more," though it smote him with pain to say it, for had not the
creature given its life for her life? And where, O God, was the
difference between them? But Naomi clung to the goat, and her throat
swelled and her bosom fluttered, and her whole body panted, and it was
almost as if her soul were struggling to burst through the bonds that
bound it, that she might speak and ask and know.
"Oh, what does it mean? Why is it? Why? Why?"
Such were the questions that seemed ready to break from her tongue.
And, thinking to answer her, Israel drew her to him and said, "It is
dead, my child--the goat is dead."
But as he spoke that word he saw by her face, as by a flash of
light in a dark place, that, often as he had told her of death, never
until that hour had she known what it was. Then, if the words that he
had spoken of death had carried no meaning, what could he hope of the
words that he had spoken of life, and of the little things which
concerned their household? And if Naomi had not heard the words he had
said of these--if she had not pondered and interpreted them--if they
had fallen on her ear only as voices in a dark cavern--only as dead
birds on a dead sea--what of the other words, the greater words, the
words of the Book of the Law and the Prophets, the words of heaven and
of the resurrection and of God ?
Had the hope of his heart been vanity? Did Naomi know nothing?
Was her great gift a mockery?
Israel's feet were set in a slippery place. Why had he boasted
himself of God's mercy? What were ears to hear to her that could not
understand? Only a torment, a terror, a plague, a perpetual
desolation! When Naomi had heard nothing she had known nothing, and
never had her spirit asked and cried in vain. Now she was dumb for
the first time, being no longer deaf. Miserable man that he was, why
had the Lord heard his supplication and why had He received his
prayer?
But, repenting of such reproaches, in memory of the joy that
Naomi's new gift had given her, he called on God to give her speech as
well.
"Give her speech, O Lord!" he cried, "speech that shall lift her
above the creatures of the field, speech whereby alone she may ask
and know! Give her speech, O God my God, and Thy servant will be
satisfied!"
AFTER Israel's return from his journey he had followed the precepts
of the young Mahdi of Mequinez. Taking a view of his situation, that
by his hardness of heart in the early days, and by base submission to
the will of Katrina, the Kaid's Christian wife, in the later ones, he
had filled the land with miseries, he now spared no cost to restore
what he had unjustly extorted. So to him that had paid double in the
taxings he had returned double--once for the tax and once for the
excess; and if any man, having been unjustly taxed for the Kaid's
tribute, had given bond on his lands for his debt and been cast into
the Kasbah and died, without ransoming them, then to his children he
had returned fourfold--double for the lands and double for the death.
Israel had done this continually, and said nothing to Ben Aboo, but
paid all charges out of his own purse, so that from being a rich man
he had fallen within a month to the condition of a poor one, for what
was one man's wealth among so many? Yet no goodwill had he won
thereby, but only pity and contempt, for the people that had taken his
money had thanked the Kaid for it, who, according to their supposals,
had called on him to correct what he had done amiss. And with Ben
Aboo himself he had fared no better, for the Basha was provoked to
anger with him when he heard from Katrina of the good money that he
had been casting away in pity for the poor.
"What have I told you a score of times?" said the woman. "That man
has mints of money."
"My money, burn his grandfather," said Ben Aboo.
Thus, on every side Israel had fallen in the world's reckoning.
When he lifted his hand from off that plough wherewith he had done
the devil's work, he had made many enemies, and such as he had before
he had made more powerful. People who had showed him lip-service
when he was thought to be rich did not conceal the joy they had that
he was brought down so near to be a beggar. Upstarts, who owed their
promotion to his intercession, found in his charities an easy handle
given them to be insolent, for, by carrying to Katrina their secret
messages of his mercy to the people, they brought things at length to
such a pass between him and the Kaid that Ben Aboo openly upbraided
Israel for his weakness, not once or twice but many times.
"And pray what is this I hear of your fine charities, master
Israel?" said Ben Aboo. "Ah, do not look surprised. There are little
birds enough to twitter of such follies. So you are throwing away
silver like bones to the dogs! Pity you've got too much of it, Israel
ben Oliel; pity you've got too much of it, I say."
"The people are poor, Lord Basha," said Israel; "they are
famishing, and they have no refuge save with God and with us."
"Tut!" cried Ben Aboo. "A famine in my bashalic! Let no man dare
to say so. The whining dogs are preying upon your simpleness,
mistress Israel. You poor old grandmother! I always suspected," he
added, facing about upon his attendants, "I always suspected that I
was served by a woman. Now I am sure of it."
Israel felt the indignity. He had given good proof of his manhood
in the past by standing five-and-twenty years scapegoat for Ben Aboo
between him and his people, making him rich by his extortions,
keeping him safe in his seat, and thereby saving him from the wooden
jellab which Abd er-Rahman, the Sultan, kept for Kaids that could not
pay. But Israel mastered his anger and held his peace.
Word went through the town that Israel had fallen from the favour
of the Basha, and then some of the more bold and free laughed at him
in the streets when they saw him relieve the miseries of the poor,
thinking himself accountable to God for their sufferings. He could
have crushed the better part of his insulters to death in his brawny
arms, but he was slow to anger and long-suffering. All the heed he
paid to their insults was to do his good work with more secrecy.
Remembering his Moorish jellab, and how effectually it had
disguised him on the night of his return home, he had recourse to it
in this difficulty. When darkness fell he donned it again, drawing the
hood well down over his black Jewish skull-cap and as far as might be
over his face. In this innocent disguise he went out night after night
for many nights among the poorer Moors that lived in the dismal
quarters of the grain markets near the Bab Ramooz. How he bore
himself being there, with what harmless deceptions he unburdened his
soul by stealth, what guileless pretences he made that he might
restore to the poor the money that had been stolen from them, would
be a long story to tell.
"Who are you?" he was asked a hundred times.
"A friend," he answered
"Who told you of our trouble?"
"Allah has angels," he would reply.
Often, on his nightly rambles, he heard himself reviled, and saw
the very children of the streets spit over their fingers at the
mention of his name. And sometimes as he passed he heard blind people
whisper together and say, "He is a saint. He comes from the Kabar at
nightfall. Allah sends him to help poor men who have been in the
clutches of Israel the Jew."
Nevertheless, Israel kept his secret. What did the word of man
avail for good or evil? It would count for nothing at the last. Do
justice and ask nought; neither praise, for it was a wayward wind, nor
gratitude, for it was the breath of angels.
One day, about a month after his return from his journey, when he
was near to the end of his substance, a message came to him that the
followers of Absalam were perishing of hunger in their prison at
Shawan. Their relatives in Tetuan had found them in food until now,
but the plague of the locust had fallen on the bread-winners, and
they had no more bread to send. Israel concluded that it was his duty
to succour them. From a just view of his responsibilities he had gone
on to a morbid one. If in the Judgment the blood of the people of
Absalam cried to God against him, he himself, and not Ben Aboo, would
be cast out into hell.
Israel juggled with his heart no further, but straightway began to
take a view of his condition. Then he saw, to his dismay, that little
as he had thought he possessed, even less remained to him out of the
wreck of his riches. Only one thing he had still, but that was a
thing so dear to his heart that he had never looked to part with it.
It was the casket of his dead wife's jewels. Nevertheless, in his
extremity he resolved to sell it now, and, taking the key, he went up
to the room where he kept it--a closet that was sacred to the relics
of her who lay in his heart for ever, but in his house no more.
Naomi went up with him, and when he had broken the seal from the
doorpost, and the little door creaked back on its hinge, the ashy
odour came out to them of a chamber long shut up. It was just as if
the buried air itself had fallen in death to dust, for the dust of the
years lay on everything. But under its dark mantle were soft silks and
delicate shawls and gauzy haiks, and veils and embroidered sashes and
light red slippers, and many dainty things such as women love. And to
him that came again after ten heavy years they were as a dream of her
that had worn them when she was young that now was dead when she was
beautiful that now was in the grave.
"Ah me, ah me! Ruth! My Ruth!" he murmured. "This was her shawl.
I brought it from Wazzan. . . . And these slippers--they came from
Rabat. Poor girl, poor girl! . . . . This sash, too, it used to be
yellow and white. How well I remember the first time she wore it!
She had put it over her head for a hood, pretending to be a Moorish
woman. But her brown curls fell out over her face, or she could not
imprison them. And then she laughed. My poor dear girl. How happy we
were once in spite of everything! It is all like yesterday. When I
think Ah no, I must think no more, I must think no more."
Israel had little heart for such visions, so he turned to the
casket of the jewels where it stood by the wall. With trembling hands
he took it and opened it, and here within were necklaces and
bracelets, and rings and earrings, glistening of gold and rubies under
their covering of dust. He lifted them one by one over his wrinkled
fingers, and looked at them while his eyes grew wet.
"Not for myself," he murmured, "not for myself would I have sold
them, not for bread to eat or water to drink; no, not for a wilderness
of worlds!"
All this time he had given little thought to Naomi, where she stood
by his side, but in her darkness and silence she touched the silks
and looked serious, and the slippers and looked perplexed, and now at
the jingling of the jewels she stretched out her hand and took one of
them from her father's fingers, and feeling it, and finding it to be a
necklace, she clasped it about her neck and laughed.
At the sound of her laughter Israel shook like a reed. It brought
back the memory of the day when she danced to her mother's death,
decked in that same necklace and those same ornaments. More on this
head Israel could not think and hold to his purpose, so he took the
jewels from Naomi's neck and returned them to the casket, and hastened
away with it to a man to whom he designed to sell it.
This was no other than Reuben Maliki, keeper of the poor box of the
Jews; for as well as a usurer he was a silversmith, and kept his shop
in the Sok el Foki. Israel was moved to go to this person by the
remembrance of two things, of which either seemed enough for his
preference--first, that he had bought the jewels of Reuben in the
beginning, and next, the Reuben had never since ceased to speak of
them in Tetuan as priceless beyond the gems of Ethiopia and the gold
of Ophir.
But when Israel came to him now with the casket that he might buy,
he eyed both with looks of indifference, though it was more dear to
his covetous and revengeful heart that Israel should humble himself in
his need, and bring these jewels, than almost any other satisfaction
that could come to it.
"And what is this that you bring me?" said Reuben languidly.
"A case of jewels," said Israel, with a downward look.
"Jewels? umph! what jewels?"
"My poor wife's. You know them, Reuben See!"
Israel opened the casket.
"Ah, your wife's. Umph! yes, I suppose I must have seen them
somewhere."
"You have seen them here, Reuben."
"Here?--do you say here?"
"Reuben, you sold them to me eighteen years ago."
"Sold them to you? Never. I don't remember it. Surely you must
be mistaken. I can never have dealt in things like these."
Reuben had taken the casket in his hands, and was pursing up his
lips in expressions of contempt.
Israel watched him closely. "Give them back to me," he said; "I
can go elsewhere. I have no time for wrangling."
Reuben's lip straightened instantly. "Wrangling? Who is
wrangling, brother? You are too impatient, Sidi"
"I am in haste," said Israel.
"Ah!"
There was an ominous silence, and then in a cold voice Reuben said,
"The things are well enough in their way. What do you wish me to do
with them?"
"To buy them," said Israel.
"_Buy_ them?"
"Yes."
"But I don't want them."
"Are they worth your money?--you don't want that either."
"Umph!"
A gleam of mockery passed over Reuben's face, and he proceeded to
examine the casket. One by one he trifled with the gems--the rich
onyx, the sapphire, the crystal, the coral, the pearl, the ruby, and
the topaz, and first he pushed them from him, and then he drew them
back again. And seeing them thus cheapened in Reuben's hairy fingers,
the precious jewels which had clasped his Ruth's soft wrist and her
white neck, Israel could scarcely hold back his hand from snatching
them away. But how can he that is poor answer him that is rich? So
Israel put his twitching hands behind him, remembering Naomi and the
poor people of Absalam, and when at length Reuben tendered him for the
casket one half what he had paid for it, he took the money in silence
and went his way.
"Five hundred dollars--I can give no more," Reuben had said.
"Do you say five hundred--five?"
"Five--take it or leave it."
It was market morning, and the market-square as Israel passed
through was a busy and noisy place. The grocers squatted within their
narrow wooden boxes turned on their sides, one half of the lid propped
up as a shelter from the sun, the other half hung down as a counter,
whereon lay raisins and figs, and melons and dates. On the unpaved
ground the bakers crouched in irregular lines. They were women
enveloped in monstrous straw hats, with big round cakes of bread
exposed for sale on rush mats at their feet. Under arcades of dried
leaves--made, like desert graves, of upright poles and dry branches
thrown across--the butchers lay at their ease, flicking the flies
from their discoloured meat. "Buy! buy! buy!" they all shouted
together. A dense throng of the poor passed between them in torn
jellabs and soiled turbans, and haggled and bought. Asses and mules
crushed through amid shouts of "Arrah!" "Arrah!" and "Balak!"
"Ba-lak!" It was a lively scene, with more than enough of bustle and
swearing and vociferation.
There was more than enough of lying and cheating also, both
practised with subtle and half-conscious humour. Inside a booth for
the sale of sugar in loaf and sack a man sat fingering a rosary and
mumbling prayers for penance. "God forgive me," he muttered, "_God
forgive me, God forgive me,_" and at every repetition he passed a
bead. A customer approached, touched a sugar loaf and asked, "How
much?" The merchant continued his prayers and did his business at a
breath. "(_God forgive me_) How much? (_God forgive me_) Four pesetas
(_God forgive me_)," and round went the restless rosary. "Too much,"
said the buyer; "I'll give three." The merchant went on with his
prayers, and answered, "(_God forgive me_) Couldn't take it for as
much as you might put in your tooth (_God forgive me_); gave four
myself (_God forgive me_)." "Then I'll leave it, old sweet-tooth,"
said the buyer, as he moved away. "Here! take it for nothing (_God
forgive me_)," cried the merchant after the retreating figure. "(_God
forgive me_) I'm giving it away (_God forgive me_); I'll starve, but
no matter (_God forgive me_), you are my brother (_God forgive me, God
forgive me, God forgive me_)."
Israel bought the bread and the meat, the raisins and the figs
which the prisoners needed--enough for the present and for many days
to come. Then he hired six mules with burdas to bear the food to
Shawan, and a man two days to lead them. Also he hired mules for
himself and Ali, for he knew full well that, unless with his own eyes
he saw the followers of Absalam receive what he had bought, no chance
was there, in these days of famine, that it would ever reach them.
And, all being ready for his short journey, he set out in the middle
of the day, when the sun was highest, hoping that the town would then
be at rest, and thinking to escape observation.
His expectation was so far justified that the market-place, when
he came to it again, with his little caravan going before him, was
silent and deserted. But, coming into the walled lane to the Bab
Toot, the gate at which the Shawan road enters, he encountered a great
throng and a strange procession. It was a procession of penance and
petition, asking God to wipe out the plague of locusts that was
destroying the land and eating up the bread of its children. A
venerable Jew, with long white beard, walked side by side with a Moor
of great stature, enshrouded in the folds of his snow-white haik.
These were the chief Rabbi of the Jews and the Imam of the Muslims,
and behind them other Jews and Moors walked abreast in the burning
sun. All were barefooted, and such as were Berbers were bareheaded
also.
"In the name of Allah, the Compassionate and Merciful!" the Imam
cried, and the Muslims echoed him.
"By the God of Jacob!" the Rabbi prayed, and the Jews repeated the
words after him.
"Spare us! Spare the land!" they all cried together. "Send rain
to destroy the eggs of the locust!" cried the Rabbi. "Else will they
rise on the ground in the sunshine like rice on the granary floor;
and neither fire nor river nor the army of the Sultan will stop them;
and we ourselves will die, and our children with us!"
And the Jews cried, "God of Jacob, be our refuge."
And the Muslims shouted, "Allah, save us!"
It was a strange sight to look upon in that land of intolerance--
the haughty Moor and the despised Jew, with all petty hatreds sunk
out of sight and forgotten in the grip of the death that threatened
both alike, walking and praying in the public streets together.
Israel drew close to the wall and passed by unobserved. And being
come into the open road outside the town, he began to take a view of
the motives that had brought him away from his home again. Then he saw
that, if he was not a hypocrite like Reuben, no credit could he give
himself for what he was doing, and if he was poor who had before been
rich, no merit could he make of his poverty.
"Naomi, Naomi, all for her, all for her," he thought. Naomi was
his hope and his salvation. His faith in God was his love of the
child. He was only bribing God to give her grace. And well he knew
it, while he journeyed towards the prison behind his six mules laden
with bread for them that lay there, that, much as he owed them, being
a cause of their miseries, the mercy he was about to show them was but
as mercy shown to himself. So the nearer he came to it the lower his
head sank into his breast, as if the sun itself that beat down so
fiercely upon his head had eyes to peer into his deceiving soul.
The town of Shawan lies sixty miles south of Tetuan in the northern
half of the territory of the tribe of Akhmas, and the sun was two
hours set when Israel entered its beautiful valley between the two
arms of the mountain called Jebel Sheshawan. Going through the
orchards and vineyards that were round it, he was recognised by
certain Jews; tanners and pannier-makers, who in the days of his
harder rule had fled from Tetuan and his heavy taxings.
"It's Israel ben Oliel," whispered one.
"God of Jacob, save us!" whispered another.
"He has followed us for the arrears of taxes."
"We must fly."
"Let us go home first."
"No time for that."
"There is Rachel--"
"She's a woman."
"But I must warn my son--he has children."
"Then you are lost. Come on."
Before he reached the rude old masonry that had once been the
fortress and was now the prison, the poor followers of Absalam, who
lay within, had heard that he was coming, and, in their despair and
the wild disorder of all their senses, they looked for nothing but
death from his visit, as if they were to be cut to pieces instantly.
Men and women and young children, gaunt with hunger and begrimed with
dirt, some with faces that were hard and stony, some with faces that
were weak and simple, some with eyes that were red as blood, all weary
with waiting and wasted with long pain, ran hither and thither in the
gloom of the foul place where they were immured together. Shedding
tears, beating their flesh, and crying out with woeful clamour, these
unhappy creatures of God, who had been great of soul when they sang
their death-song with the precipice behind them and the soldiers in
front, now quaked for the miserable lives which they preserved in
hunger and cherished in bitterness.
By help of the seal of his master, which he always carried, Israel
found his way into the courtyard of the prison. The prisoners, who
had been gathered there for his inspection, heard his footsteps, and
by one impulse, as if an angel from heaven had summoned them, they
fell to their knees about the door whereby he must enter, men behind
and women in front, and mothers holding out their babes before their
breasts so that he might see them first, and have mercy upon them if
he had a heart made for pity.
Then the door of the place was thrown open, and Israel entered.
His head was bowed down, and his feet were bare. The people drew
their breath in wonder.
"Arise," he said; "I mean you no harm.! See! Here is bread! Take
it, and God bless you!"
So saying, he motioned with his trembling hand to where Ali and
the muleteer brought in the burden of food behind him.
And when the poor souls could believe it at last, that he whom
they had looked for as their judge had come as their saviour, their
hearts surged within them. Their hunger left them, and only the
children could eat. For a moment they stood in silence about Israel,
and their tears stained their wasted faces. And Israel, in their
midst, tasted a new joy in his new poverty such as his riches had
never brought him--no, not once in all the days of his old prosperity.
At length an old man--he was a Muslim--looked steadily into
Israel's face and said, "May the God of Jacob bless thee also,
brother!"
After that they all recovered their voices and began to thank him
out of their blind gratitude, falling to their knees at his feet as
before, yet with hearts so different.
"May the Father of the fatherless requite thee!"
"May the child of thy wife be blessed!"
"Stop," he cried; "stop! you don't know what you are saying."
He turned away from them with a look of pain, as if their words
had stung him. They followed him and touched his kaftan with their
lips; they pushed their children under his hands for his blessing.
"No, no," he cried; "no, no, no!"
Then he passed out of the place with rapid steps and fled from the
town like one who was ashamed.
Although Israel did not know it, and in the hunger of his heart he
would have given all the world to learn it, yet if any man could have
peered into the dark chamber where the spirit of Naomi had dwelt
seventeen years in silence, he would have seen that, dear as the child
was to the father, still dearer and more needful was the father to the
child. Since her mother left her he had been eyes of her eyes and
ears of her ears, touching her hand for assent, patting her head for
approval, and guiding her fingers to teach them signs.
Thus Israel was more to Naomi than any father before to any
daughter, more to her than mother or sister or brother or kindred;
for he was her sole gateway to the world she lived in, the one alley
whereby her spirit gazed upon it, the key that opened the closed doors
of her soul; and without him neither could the world come in to her,
nor could she go out to the world. Soft and beautiful was the
commerce between them, mute on one side of all language save tears and
kisses, like the commerce of a mother with her first-born child, as
holy in love, as sweet in mystery as pure from taint, and as deep in
tenderness. While her father was with her, then only did Naomi seem to
live, and her happy heart to be full of wonder at the strange new
things that flowed in upon it. And when he was gone from her, she was
merely a spirit barred and shut within her body's close abode,
waiting to be born anew.
When Israel made ready to go to Shawan, Naomi clung to him to
hinder him, as if remembering his long absence when he went to Fez,
and connecting it with the illness that came to her in his absence;
or as seeming to see, with those eyes that were blind to the ways of
the world, what was to befall him before he returned. He put her from
him with many tender words, and smoothed her hair and kissed her
forehead, as though to chide her while he blessed her for so much
love. But her dread increased, and she held to him like a child to
its mother's robe. And at last, when he unloosed her hands and pushed
them away as if in anger, and after that laughed lightly as if to tell
her that he knew her meaning yet had no fear, her trouble rose to a
storm and she fell to a fit of weeping.
"Tut! tut! what is this?" he said. "I will be back to-morrow. Do
you hear, my child?--tomorrow! At sunset to-morrow."
When he was gone, the terror that had so suddenly possessed her
seemed to increase. Her face was red, her mouth was dry, her eyelids
quivered, and her hands were restless. If she sat she rose quickly;
if she stood she walked again more fast. Sometimes she listened with
head aside, sometimes moaned, sometimes wept outright, and sometimes
she muttered to herself in noises such as none had heard from her lips
before.
The bondwomen could find no-way to comfort her. Indeed, the
trouble of her heart took hold of them. When she plucked Fatimah by
the gown, and with her blind eyes, that were also wet, seemed to look
sadly into the black woman's face, as if asking for her father, like a
dog for its master that is dead, Fatimah shed tears as well, partly in
pity of her fears, and partly in terror of the unknown troubles still
to come which God Himself might have revealed to her.
"Alas! little dumb soul, what is to happen now?" cried Fatimah.
"Alack! girl," said Habeebah, "the maid is sickening again."
And this was all that the good souls could make of her restless
agitation. She slept that night from sheer exhaustion, a deep
lethargic slumber, apparently broken once or twice by troubled dreams.
When she awoke in the morning at the first sound of the voice of the
mooddin, the evil dreams seemed to be with her still. She appeared to
be moving along in them like one spell-bound by a great dread that she
could not utter, as if she were living through a nightmare of the day.
Then long hour followed long hour, but the inquietude of her mood did
not abate. Her bosom heaved, her throat throbbed, her excitement
became hysterical. Sometimes she broke into wild, inarticulate
shouts, and sometimes the black women could have believed, in spite of
knowledge and reason, that she was muttering and speaking words,
though with a wild disorder of utterance.
At last the day waned and the sun went down. Naomi seemed to know
when this occurred, for she could scent the cool air. Then, with a
fresh intentness, she listened to the footsteps outside, and, having
listened, her trouble increased. What did Naomi hear? The black women
could hear nothing save the common sounds of the streets--the shouts
of children at play, the calls of women, the cries of the
mule-drivers, and now and again the piercing shrieks of a black
story-teller from the town of the Moors--only this varied flow of
voices, and under it the indistinct murmur of multitudinous life
coming and going on every side.
Did other sounds come to Naomi's ears? Was her spiritual power,
which was unclogged by any grosser sense than that of hearing,
conscious of some terrible undertone of impending trouble? Or was her
disquietude no more than recollection of her father's promise to be
back at sunset, and mere anxiety for his return? Fatimah and Habeebah
knew nothing and saw nothing. All that they could do was to wring
their hands.
Meantime, Naomi's agitation became yet more restless, and nothing
would serve her at last but that she should go out into the streets.
And the black women, seeing her so steadfastly minded, and being
affected by her fears, made her ready, and themselves as well, and
then all three went out together.
"Where are we going?" said Habeebah.
"Nay, how should I know?" said Fatimah.
"We are fools," said Habeebah.
It was now an hour after sunset, the light was fading, and the
traffic was sinking down. Only at the gate of the Mellah, which,
contrary to custom, had not yet been closed, was the throng still
dense. A group of Jews stood under it in earnest and passionate talk.
There was a strange and bodeful silence on every side. The
coffee-house of the Moors beyond the gate was already lit up, and the
door was open, but the floor was empty. No snake-charmers, no
jugglers, no story-tellers, with their circles of squatting
spectators, were to be seen or heard. These professors of science and
magic and jocularity had never before been absent. Even the blind
beggars, crouching under the town walls, were silent. But out of the
mosques there came a deep low chant as of many voices, from great
numbers gathered within.
"The girl was right," said Fatimah; "something has happened."
"What is it?" said Habeebah.
"Nay, how should I know that either?" said Fatimah.
"I tell you we are a pair of fools," said Habeebah.
Meantime Naomi held their hands, and they must needs follow where
she led. Her body was between them; they were borne along by her
feeble frame as by an irresistible force. And pitiful it would have
seemed, and perhaps foolish also, if any human eye had seen them then,
these helpless children of God, going whither they knew not and
wherefore they knew not, save that a fear that was like to madness
drew them on.
"Listen! I hear something," said Fatimah.
"Where?" said Habeebah.
"The way we are going," said Fatimah.
On and on Naomi passed from street to street. They were the same
streets whereby she had returned to her father's house on the day that
her goat was slain. Never since then had she trodden them, but she
neither altered not turned aside to the right or the left, but made
straight forward, until she came to the Sok el Foki, and to the place
where the goat had fallen before the foaming jaws of the dog from the
Mukabar. Then she could go no farther.
"Holy saints, what is this?" cried Habeebah.
"Didn't I tell you- the girl heard something?" said Fatimah.
"God's face shine on us," said Habeebah. "What is all this crowd?"
An immense throng covered the upper half of the market-square, and
overflowed into the streets and arched alleys leading to the Kasbah.
It was not a close and dense crowd of white-hooded forms such as
gathered on that spot on market morning--a seething, steaming, moving
mass of haiks and jellabs and Maghribi blankets, with here and there
a bare shaven head and plaited crown-lock--but a great crowd of dark
figures in black gowns and skull-caps. The assemblage was of Jews
only--Jews of every age and class and condition, from the comely
young Jewish butcher in his blood-stained rags to the toothless old
Jewish banker with gold braid on his new kaftan.
They were gathered together to consider the posture of affairs in
regard to the plague of locusts. Hence the Moorish officials had
suffered them to remain outside the walls of their Mellah after sunset.
Some of the Moors themselves stood aside and watched, but at a
distance, leaving a vacant space to denote the distinction between
them. The scribes sat in their open booths, pretending to read their
Koran or to write with their reed pens; the gunsmiths stood at their
shop-doors; and the country Berbers, crowded out of their usual
camping ground on the Sok, squatted on the vacant spots adjacent. All
looked on eagerly, but apparently impassively, at the vast company of
Jews.
And so great was the concourse of these people, and so wild their
commotion, that they were like nothing else but a sea-broken by
tempestuous winds. The market-place rang as a vault with the sounds
of their voices, their harsh cries, their protests, their pleadings,
their entreaties, and all the fury of their brazen throats. And out
of their loud uproar one name above all other names rose in the air on
every side. It was the name of Israel ben Oliel. Against him they
were breathing out threats, foretelling imminent dangers from the hand
of man, and predicting fresh judgments from God. There was no evil
which had befallen him early or late but they were remembering it, and
reckoning it up and rejoicing in it. And there was no evil which had
befallen themselves but they were laying it to his charge.
Yesterday, when they passed through the town in their procession
of penance, following their Grand Rabbi as he walked abreast of the
Imam, that they might call on God to destroy the eggs of the locust,
they had expected the heavens to open over their heads, and to feel
the rain fall instantly. The heavens had not opened, the rain had not
fallen, the thick hot cake as of baked air had continued to hang and
to palpitate in the sky, and the fierce sun had beaten down as before
on the parched and scorching earth. Seeing this, as their petitions
ended, while the Muslims went back to their houses, disappointed but
resigned, and muttering to themselves, "It is written" they had
returned to their synagogues, convinced that the plague was a
judgment, and resolved, like the sailors of the ship going down to
Tarshish, to cast lots and to know for whose cause the evil was upon
them.
They were more than a hundred and twenty families, and had thought
they were therefore entitled to elect a Synhedrin. This was in
defiance of ceremonial law, for they knew full well that the formation
of a Synhedrin and the right to try a capital charge had long been
forbidden. But they were face to face with death, and hence the
anachronism had been adopted, and they had fallen back on the custom
of their fathers. So three-and-twenty judges they had appointed,
without usurers, or slave-dealers, or gamblers, or aged men or
childless ones.
The judges had sat in session the same night, and their judgment
had been unanimous. The lot of Jonah had fallen on Israel. He had
sold himself to their masters and enemies, the Moors, against the hope
and interest of his own people; he had driven some of the sons of his
race and nation into exile in distant cities; he had brought others to
the Kasbah, and yet others to death: he was a man at open enmity with
God, and God had given him, as a mark of His displeasure, a child who
was cursed with devils, a daughter who had been born blind and dumb
and deaf, and was still without sight and speech.
Could the hand of God's anger be more plain if it were printed in
fire upon the sky? Israel was the evil one for whose sin they
suffered this devastating plague. The Lord was rebuking them for
sparing him, even as He had rebuked Saul for sparing the king and
cattle of the Amalekites. Seventeen years and more he had been among
them without being of them, never entering a synagogue, never
observing a fast, never joining in a feast. Not until their judgment
went out against him would God's anger be appeased. Let them cut him
off from the children of his race, and the blessed rain would fall
from heaven, and the thirsty earth would drink it, and the eggs of the
locust would be destroyed. But let them put off any longer their
rightful task and duty before God and before the people, and their
evil time would soon come. Within eight-and-twenty days the eggs
would be hatched, and within eight-and-forty other days the young
locust would have wings. Before the end of those seventy-and-six days
the harvest of wheat and barley would be yellow to the scythe and ripe
for the granary, but the locust would cover the face of the earth, and
there would be no grain to gather. The scythe would be idle, the
granaries would be empty, the tillers of the ground would come hungry
into the markets, and they themselves that were town-dwellers and
tradesmen would be perishing for bread, both they and their children
with them.
Thus in Israel's absence, while he was away at Shawan, the
three-and-twenty judges of the new Synhedrin of Tetuan had--contrary
to Jewish custom--tried and convicted him. God would not let them
perish for this man's life, and neither would He charge them with his
blood.
Nevertheless, judges though they were, they could not kill him.
They could only appeal against him to the Kaid. And what could they
say? That the Lord had sent this plague of locusts in punishment of
Israel's sin? Ben Aboo would laugh in their faces and answer them,
"It is written." That to appease God's wrath it was expedient that
this Jew should die? Convince the Muslim that a Jew had brought this
desolation upon the land of the Shereefs, and he would arise, and his
soldiers with him, and the whole community of the Jewish people would
be destroyed.
The judges had laid their heads together. It was idle to appeal
to Ben Aboo against Israel on any ground of belief. Nay, it was more
than idle, for it was dangerous. There was nothing in common between
his faith and their own. His God was not their God, save in name
only. The one was Allah, great, stern, relentless, inexorable, not to
be moved striding on to an inevitable end, heedless of man and
trampling upon him--though sometimes mocked with the names of the
Compassionate and the Merciful. But the other was Jehovah, the father
of His people Israel, caring for them, upholding them, guiding the
world for them, conquering for them; but visiting His anger upon them
when they fell away from Him.
The three-and-twenty judges in session in the synagogue up the
narrow lane of the Sok el Foki had sat far into the night, with the
light of the oil-lamps gleaming on their perplexed and ashen faces.
Some other ground of appeal against Israel had to be found, and they
could not find it. At length they had remembered that, by ancient law
and custom the trial of an Israelite, for life or death, must end an
hour after sunset. Also they had been reminded that the day that heard
the evidence in a capital case must not be the same whereon the
verdict was pronounced. So they had broken up and returned home. And,
going out at the gate, they had told the crowds that waited there that
judgment had fallen upon Israel ben Oliel, but that his doom could not
be made known until sunset on the following day.
That time was now come. In eagerness and impatience, in hot blood
and anger, the people had gathered in the Sok three hours after
midday. The Judges had reassembled in the synagogue in the early
morning. They had not broken bread since yesterday, for the day that
condemned a son of Israel to death must be a fast-day to his judges.
As the afternoon wore on, the doors of the synagogue were thrown
open. The sentence was not ready yet, but the: judges in council were
near to their decision. At the open door the reader of the synagogue
had stationed himself, holding a flag in his hand. Under the gate of
the Mellah a second messenger was standing, so placed that he could
see the movement of the flag. If the flag fell, the sentence would be
"death," and the man under the gate would carry the tidings to the
people gathered in the market-place. Then the three-and-twenty judges
would come in procession and tell what steps had been taken that the
doom pronounced might be carried into effect.
Amid all their loud uproar, and notwithstanding the wild anger
which seemed to consume them, the people turned at intervals of a few
minutes to glance back towards the Mellah gate.
If the angels were looking down, surely it was a pitiful sight--
these children of Zion in a strange land, where they were held as dogs
and vermin and human scavengers to the Muslim; thinking and speaking
and acting as their fathers had done any time for five thousand years
before; again judging it expedient that one man should die rather
than the whole people be brought to destruction; again probing their
crafty heads, if not their hearts, for an artifice whereby their
scapegoat might be killed by the hand of their enemy; children indeed,
for all that some of their heads were bald, and some of their beards
were grizzled, and some of their faces were wrinkled and hard and
fierce; little children of God writhing in the grip of their great
trouble
Such was the scene to which Naomi had come, and such had been the
doings of the town since the hour when her father left her. What hand
had led her? What power had taught her? Was it merely that her
far-reaching ears had heard the tumult? Had some unknown sense,
groping in darkness, filled her with a vague terror, too indefinite
to be called a thought, of great and impending evil? Or was it some
other influence, some higher leading? Was it that the Lord was in His
heaven that night as always, and that when the two black bondwomen in
their helpless fear were following the blind maiden through the
darkening streets she in her turn was following God?
When Fatimah and Habeebah saw what it was to which Naomi had led
them, though they were sorely concerned at it, yet they were relieved
as well, and put by the worst of the fears with which her strange
behaviour had infected them. And remembering that she was the
daughter of Israel, and they were his servants, and neither thinking
themselves safe from danger if they stayed any longer where his name
was bandied about as a reproach, nor fully knowing how many of the
curses that were heaped upon him found a way to Naomi's mind, they
were for turning again and going back to the house.
"Come," said Habeebah; "let us go--we are not safe."
"Yes," said Fatimah; "let us take the poor child back."
"Come along, then," said Habeebah, and she laid hold of Naomi's
hand.
"Naomi, Naomi," whispered Fatimah in the girl's ear, "we are going
home. Come, dearest, come."
But Naomi was not to be moved. No gentle voice availed to stir
her. She stood where she had placed herself on the outskirts of the
crowd, motionless save for her heaving bosom and trembling limbs, and
silent save for her loud breathing and the low muttering of her pale
lips, yet listening eagerly with her neck outstretched.
And if, as she listened, any human eye could have looked in on her
dumb and imprisoned soul, the tumult it would have seen must have been
terrible. For, though no one knew it as a certainty, yet in her
darkness and muteness since the coming of her gift of hearing she had
been learning speech and the different voices of men. All that was
spoken in that crowd she understood, and never a word escaped her, and
what others saw she felt, only nearer and more terrible, because
wrapped in the darkness outside her eyes that were blind.
First there came a lull in the general clamour, and then a coarse,
jarring, stridulous voice rose in the air. Naomi knew whose voice it
was--it was the voice of old Abraham Pigman, the usurer.
"Brothers of Tetuan," the old man cried, "what are we waiting for?
For the verdict of the judges? Who wants their verdict? There is
only one thing to do. Let us ask the Kaid to remove this man. The
Kaid is a humane master. If he has sometimes worked wrong by us, he
has been driven to do that which in his soul he abhors. Let us go to
him and say: 'Lord Basha, through five-and-twenty years this man of
our people has stood over us to oppress us, and your servants have
suffered and been silent. In that time we have seen the seed of
Israel hunted from the houses of their fathers where they have lived
since their birth. We have seen them buffeted and smitten, without a
resting-place for the soles of their feet, and perishing in hunger and
thirst and nakedness and the want of all things. Is this to your
honour, or your glory, or your profit?'"
The people broke into loud cries of approval, and when they were
once more silent, the thick voice went on: "And not the seed of Israel
only, but the sons of Islam also, has this man plunged in the depths
of misery. Under a Sultan who desires liberty and a Kaid who loves
justice, in a land that breathes freedom and a city that is favoured
of God, our brethren the Muslimeen sink with us in deep mire where
there is no standing. Every day brings to both its burden of fresh
sorrow. At this moment a plague is upon us. The country is bare; the
town is overflowing; every man stumbles over his fellow our lives hang
in doubt; in the morning we say 'Would it were evening'; in the
evening we say, 'Would it were morning'; stretch out your hand and
help us!"
Again the crowd burst into shouts of assent, and the stridulous
voice continued: "Let us say to him 'Lord Basha, there is no way of
help but one. Pluck down this man that is set over us. He belongs
to our own race and nation; but give us a master of any other race
and nation; any Moor, any Arab, any Berber, any negro; only take back
this man of our own people, and your servants will bless you.'"
The old man's voice was drowned in great shouts of "Ben Aboo!" "To
Ben Aboo!" "Why wait for the judges?" "To the Kasbah!" "The Kasbah!"
But a second voice came piercing through the boom and clash of
those waves of sound, and it was thin and shrill as the cry of a
pea-hen. Naomi knew this voice also--it was the voice of Judah ben
Lolo, the elder of the synagogue, who would have been sitting among
the three-and-twenty-judges but that he was a usurer also.
"Why go to the Kaid?" said the voice like a peahen. "Does the
Basha love this Israel ben Oliel? Has he of late given many signs of
such affection? Bethink you, brothers, and act wisely! Would not Ben
Aboo be glad to have done with this servant who has been so long his
master? Then why trouble him with your grievance? Act for
yourselves, and the Kaid will thank you! And well may this Israel ben
Oliel praise the Lord and worship Him, that He has not put it into the
hearts of His people to play the game of breaker of tyrants by the
spilling of blood, as the races around them, the Arabs and the
Berbers, who are of a temper more warm by nature, must long ago have
done, and that not unjustly either, or altogether to the displeasure
of a Kaid who is good and humane and merciful, and has never loved
that his poor people should be oppressed."
At this word, though it made pretence to commend the temperance of
the crowd, the fury broke out more loudly than before. "Away with the
man!" "Away with him!" rang out on every side in countless voices,
husky and clear, gruff and sharp, piping and deep. Not a voice of them
all called for mercy or for patience.
While the anger of the people surged and broke in the air, a third
voice came through the tumult, and Naomi knew it, for it was the harsh
voice of Reuben Maliki, the silversmith and keeper of the poor-box.
"And does God," said Reuben, "any more than Ben Aboo--blessings on
his life!--love that His people should be oppressed? How has He dealt
with this Israel ben Oliel? Does He stand steadfastly beside him, or
has His hand gone out against him? Since the day he came here,
five-and-twenty years ago, has God saved him or smitten him? Remember
Ruth, his wife, how she died young! Remember her father, our old
Grand Rabbi, David ben Ohana, how the hand of the Lord fell upon him
on the night of the day whereon his daughter was married! Remember
this girl Naomi, this offspring of sin, this accursed and afflicted
one, still blind and speechless!"
Then the voices of the crowd came to Naomi's ears like the neigh
of a breathless horse. Fatimah had laid hold of her gown and was
whispering. "Come! Let us away!" But Naomi only clutched her hand
and trembled.
The harsh voice of Reuben Maliki rose in the air again. "Do you
say that the Lord gave him riches? Behold him!--he swallowed them
down, but has he not vomited them up? Examine him!--that which he
took by extortions has he not been made to restore? Does God's anger
smoke against him? Answer me, yes or no!"
Like a bolt out of the sky there came a great shout of "Yes!" And
instantly afterwards, from another direction, there came a fourth
voice, a peevish, tremulous voice, the voice of an old woman. Naomi
knew it--it was the voice of Rebecca Bensabott, ninety-and-odd years
of age, and still deaf as a stone.
"Tut! What is all this talking about?" she snapped and grunted.
"Reuben Maliki, save your wind for your widows--you don't give them
too much of it. And, Abraham Pigman, go home to your money-bags. I
am an old fool, am I? Well, I've the more right to speak plain. What
are we waiting here for? The judges? Pooh! The sentence?
Fiddle-faddle! It is Israel ben Oliel, isn't it? Then stone him!
What are you afraid of? The Kaid? He'll laugh in your faces. A
blood-feud? Who is to wage it? A ransom? Who is to ask for it? Only
this mute, this Naomi, and you'll have to work her a miracle and find
her a tongue first. Out on you! Men? Pshaw! You are children!"
The people laughed--it was the hard, grating, hollow laugh that
sets the teeth on edge behind the lips that utter it. Instantly the
voices of the crowd broke up into a discordant clangour, like to the
counter-currents of an angry sea. "She's right," said a shrill voice.
"He deserves it," snuffled a nasal one. "At least let us drive him
out of the town," said a third gruff voice. "To his house!" cried a
fourth voice, that pealed over all. "To his house!" came then from
countless hungry throats.
"Come, let us go," whispered Fatimah to Naomi, and again she laid
hold of her arm to force her away. But Naomi shook off her hand, and
muttered strange sounds to herself.
"To his house! Sack it! Drive the tyrant out!" the people howled
in a hundred rasping voices; but, before any one had stirred, a man
riding a mule had forced his way into the middle of the crowd.
It was the messenger from under the Mellah gate. In their new
frenzy the people had forgotten him. He had come to make known the
decision of the Synhedrin. The flag had fallen; the sentence was
death.
Hearing this doom, the people heard no more, and neither did they
wait for the procession of the judges, that they might learn of the
means whereby they, who were not masters in their own house, might
carry the sentence into effect. The procession was even then forming.
It was coming out of the synagogue; it was passing under the gate of
the Mellah; it was approaching the Sok el Foki. The Rabbis walked in
front of it. At its tail came four Moors with shamefaced looks. They
were the soldiers and muleteers whom Israel had hired when he set out
on his pilgrimage to that enemy of all Kaids and Bashas, Mohammed of
Mequinez. By-and-by they were to betray him to Ben Aboo.
But no one saw either Rabbis or Moors. The people were twisting
and turning like worms on an upturned turf. "Why sack his house?"
cried some. "Why drive him out?" cried others. "A poor revenge!"
"Kill him!" "Kill him!"
At the sound of that word, never before spoken, though every ear
had waited for it, the shouts of the crowd rose to madness. But
suddenly in the midst of the wild vociferations there was a shrill cry
of "He is there!" and then there was a great silence.
It was Israel himself. He was coming afoot down the lane under
the town walls from the gate called the Bab Toot, where the road comes
in from Shawan. At fifty paces behind him Ali, the black boy, was
riding one mule and leading another.
He was returning from the prison, and thinking how the poor
followers of Absalam, after he had fed them of his poverty, had blest
him out of their dry throats, saying, "May the God of Jacob bless you
also, brother!" and "May the child of your wife be blessed!" Ah!
those blessings, he could hear them still! They followed him as he
walked. He did not fly from them any longer, for they sang in his
ears and were like music in his melted soul. Once before he had heard
such music. It was in England. The organ swelled and the voices
rose, and he was a lonely boy, for his mother lay in her grave at his
feet. His mother! How strangely his heart was softened towards
himself and-all the world And Ruth! He could think of nothing
without tenderness. And Naomi! Ah! the sun was nigh two hours down,
and Naomi would be waiting for him at home, for she was as one that
had no life without his presence. What would befall if he were taken
from her? That thought was like the sweeping of a dead hand across
his face. So his body stooped as he walked with his staff, and his
head was held down, and his step was heavy.
Thus the old lion came on to the market-place, where the people
were gathered together as wolves to devour him. On he came, seeing
nothing and hearing nothing and fearing nothing, and in the silence of
the first surprise at sight of him his footsteps were heard on the
stones.
Naomi heard them.
Then it seemed to Naomi's ears that a voice fell, as it were, out
of the air, crying, "God has given him into our hands!" After that all
sounds seemed to Naomi to fade far-away, and to come to her muffled
and stifled by the distance.
But with a loud shout, as if it had been a shout out of one great
throat, the crowd encompassed Israel crying, "Kill him!" Israel
stopped, and lifted his heavy face upon the people; but neither did he
cry out nor make any struggle for his life. He stood erect and silent
in their midst, and massive and square. His brave bearing did not
break their fury. They fell upon him, a hundred hands together. One
struck at his face, another tore at his long grey hair, and a third
thrust him down on to his knees.
No one had yet observed on the outer rim of the crowd the pale
slight girl that stood there--blind, dumb, powerless, frail, and so
softly beautiful--a waif on the margin of a tempestuous sea. Through
the thick barriers of Naomi's senses everything was coming to her ugly
and terrible. Her father was there! They were tearing him to pieces!
Suddenly she was gone from the side of the two black women. Like a
flash of light she had passed through the bellowing throng. She had
thrust herself between the people and her father, who was on the
ground: she was standing over him with both arms upraised, and at that
instant God loosed her tongue, for she was crying, "Mercy! Mercy!"
Then the crowd fell back in great fear. The dumb had spoken. No
man dared to touch Israel any more. The hands that had been lifted
against him dropped back useless, and a wide circle formed around him.
In the midst of it stood Naomi. Her blind face quivered; she seemed
to glow like a spirit. And like a spirit she had driven back the
people from their deed of blood as with the voice of God--she, the
blind, the frail, the helpless.
Israel rose to his feet, for no man touched him again, and the
procession of judges, which had now come up, was silent. And, seeing
how it was that in the hour of his great need the gift of speech had
come upon Naomi, his heart rose big within him, and he tried to
triumph over his enemies and say, "You thought God's arm was against
me, but behold how God has saved me out of your hands."
But he could not speak. The dumbness that had fallen from his
daughter seemed to have dropped upon him.
At that moment Naomi turned to him and said, "Father!"
Then the cup of Israel's heart was full. His throat choked him.
So he took her by the hand in silence and down a long alley of the
people they passed through the Mellah gate and went home to their
house. Her eyes were to the earth, and she wept as she walked; but
his face was lifted up, and his tears and his blood ran down his
cheeks together.
Although Naomi, in her darkness and muteness since the coming of
her gift of hearing, had learned to know and understand the different
tongues of men, yet now that she tried to call forth words for
herself, and to put out her own voice in the use of them, she was no
more than a child untaught in the ways of speech. She tripped and
stammered and broke down, and had to learn to speak as any helpless
little one must do, only quicker, because her need was greater, and
better, because she was a girl and not a babe. And, perceiving her own
awkwardness, and thinking shame of it, and being abashed by the
patient waiting of her father when she halted in her talk with him,
and still more humbled by Ali's impetuous help when she miscalled her
syllables, she fell back again on silence.
Hardly could she be got to speak at all. For some days after the
night when her emancipated tongue had rescued Israel from his enemies
on the Sok, she seemed to say nothing beyond "Yes" and "No,"
notwithstanding Ali's eager questions, and Fatimah's tearful
blessings, and Habeebah's breathless invocations, and also
notwithstanding the hunger and thirst of the heart of her father, who,
remembering with many throbs of joy the voice that he heard with his
dreaming ears when he slept on the straw bed of the poor fondak at
Wazzan, would have given worlds of gold, if he had possessed them
still, to hear it constantly with his waking ears.
"Come, come, little one; come, come, speak to us, only speak,"
Israel would say.
His appeals were useless. Naomi would smile and hang her sunny
head, and lift her father's hairy hand to her cheek, and say nothing.
But just about a week later a beautiful thing occurred. Israel was
returning to the Mellah after one of his secret excursions in the poor
quarter of the Bab Ramooz, where he had spent the remainder of the
money which old Reuben had paid him for the casket of his wife's
jewels. The night was warm, the moon shone with steady lustre, and
the stars were almost obliterated as separate lights by a luminous
silvery haze. It was late, very late, and far and near the town was
still.
With his innocent disguise, his Moorish jellab, hung over his arm,
Israel had passed the Mellah gate, being the only Jew who was allowed
to cross it after sunset. He was feeling happy as he walked home
through the sleeping streets, with his black shadow going in front.
The magic of the summer night possessed him, and his soul was full of
joy.
All his misgivings had fallen away. The coming to Naomi of the
gift of speech had seemed to banish from his mind the dark spirit of
the past. He had no heart for reprisals upon the enemies who had
sought to kill him. Without that blind effort on their part, perhaps
his great blessing had not come to pass. Man's extremity had indeed
been God's opportunity and Ruth's vision was all but realised.
Ah, Ruth! Ruth! It had escaped Israel's notice until then that
he had been thinking of his dead wife the whole night through. When he
put it to himself so, he saw the reason of it at once. It was because
there was a sort of secret charm in the certainty that where she was
she must surely know that her dream was come true. There was also a
kind of bitter pathos in the regret that she was only an angel now and
not a woman; therefore she could not be with him to share his human
joy.
As he walked through the Mellah, Israel thought of her again: how
she had sung by the cradle to her babe that could not hear. Sung?
Yes, he could almost fancy that he heard her singing yet. That voice
so soft, so clear even in its whispers--there had been nothing like it
in all the world. And her songs! Israel could also fancy that he
heard her favourite one. It was a song of love, a pure but passionate
melody wherein his own delicious happiness in the earlier days, before
the death of the old Grand Rabbi, had seemed to speak and sing.
Israel began to laugh at himself as he walked. To think that the
warmth and softness of the night, the sweet caressing night, the light
and beauty of the moon and the stillness and slumber of the town,
could betray an old fellow into forgotten dreams like these!
He had taken out of his pocket the big key of the clamped door to
his house, and was crossing the shadowed lane in front of it, when
suddenly he thought he heard music coating in the air above him. He
stopped and listened. Then he had no longer any doubt. It was music,
it was singing; he knew the song, and he knew the voice. The song was
the song he had been thinking of, and the voice was the voice of Ruth.
O where is Love?
Where, where is Love?
Is it of heavenly birth ?
Is it a thing of earth?
Where, where is Love?
Israel felt himself rooted to the spot, and he stood some time
without stirring. He looked around. All else was still. The night
was as silent as death. He listened attentively. The singing seemed
to come from his own house. Then he thought he must be dreaming
still, and he took a step forward. But he stopped again and covered
both his ears. That was of no avail, for when he removed his hands
the voice was there as before.
A shiver ran over his limbs, yet he could not believe what his soul
was saying. The key dropped out of his hand and rang on the stone.
When the clangour was done the voice continued. Israel bethought him
then that his household must be asleep, and it flashed on his mind
that if this were a human voice the singing ought to awaken them.
Just at that moment the night guard went by and saluted him. "God
bless your morning!" the guard cried; and Israel answered, "Your
morning be blessed!" That was all. The guard seemed to have heard
nothing. His footsteps were dying away, but the voice went on.
Then a strange emotion filled Israel's heart, and he reflected
that even if it were Ruth she could have come on no evil errand. That
thought gave him courage, and he pushed forward to the door. As he
fumbled the key into the lock he saw that a beggar was crouching by
the doorway in the shadow cast by the moonlight. The man was asleep.
Israel could hear his breathing, and smell his rags. Also he could
hear the thud of his own temples like the beating of a drum in his
brain.
At length, as he was groping feebly through the crooked passage, a
new thought came to him. "Naomi," he told himself in a whisper of awe.
It was she. By the full flood of the moonlight in the patio he saw
her. She was on the balcony. Her beautiful white-robed figure was
half sitting on the rail, half leaning against the pillar. The whole
lustre of the moon was upon her. A look of joy beamed on her face.
She was singing her mother's song with her mother's voice, and all
the air, and the sky, and the quiet white town seemed to listen:--
Within my heart a voice
Bids earth and heaven rejoice
Sings--"Love, great Love
O come and claim shine own,
O come and take thy throne
Reign ever and alone,
Reign, glorious golden Love."
Then Israel's fear was turned to rapture. Why had he not thought
of this before? Yet how could he have thought of it? He had never
once heard Naomi's voice save in the utterance of single words. But
again, why had he not remembered that before the tongues of children
can speak words of their own they sing the words of others?
The singing ended, and then Israel, struggling with his dry throat,
stepped a pace forward--his foot grated on the pavement--and he called
to the singer--
"Naomi!"
The girl bent forward, as if peering down into the darkness below,
but Israel could see that her fixed eyes were blind.
"My father!" she whispered.
"Where did you learn it?" said Israel.
"Fatimah, she taught me," Naomi answered; and then she added
quickly, as if with great but childlike pride, saying what she did not
mean, "Oh yes, it was I! Was I not beautiful?"
After that night Naomi's shyness of speech dropped away from her,
and what was left was only a sweet maidenly unconsciousness of all
faults and failings, with a soft and playful lisp that ran in and out
among the simple words that fell from her red lips like a young
squirrel among the fallen leaves of autumn. It would be a long task to
tell how her lisping tongue turned everything then to favour and to
prettiness. On the coming of the gift of hearing, the world had first
spoken to her; and now, on the coming of the gift of speech, she
herself was first speaking to the world. What did she tell it at that
first sweet greeting? She told it what she had been thinking of it in
those mute days that were gone, when she had neither hearing nor
speech, but was in the land of silence as well as in the land of
night.
The fancies of the blind maid so long shut up within the beautiful
casket of her body were strange and touching ones. Israel took
delight in them at the beginning. He loved to probe the dark places
of the mind they came from, thinking God Himself must surely have
illumined it at some time with a light that no man knew, so startling
were some of Naomi's replies, so tender and so beautiful.
One evening, not long after she had first spoken, he was sitting
with her on the roof of their house as the sun was going down over
the palpitating plains towards Arzila and Laraiche and the great sea
beyond. Twilight was gathering in the Feddan under the Mosque, and
the last light of day, which had parleyed longest with the snowy
heights of the Reef Mountains, was glowing only on the sky above them.
"Sweetheart," said Israel, "what is the sun?"
"The sun is a fire in the sky," Naomi answered; "my Father lights
it every morning."
"Truly, little one, thy Father lights it," said Israel; "thy Father
which is in heaven."
"Sweetheart," he said again, "what is darkness?"
"Oh, darkness is cold," said Naomi promptly, and she seemed to
shiver.
"Then the light must be warmth, little one?" said Israel.
"Yes, and noise," she answered; and then she added quickly, "Light
is alive."
Saying this, she crept closer to his side, and knelt there, and by
her old trick of love she took his hand in both of hers, and pressed
it against her cheek, and then, lifting her sweet face with its
motionless eyes she began to tell him in her broken words and pretty
lisp what she thought of night. In the night the world, and
everything in it, was cold and quiet. That was death. The angels of
God came to the world in the day. But God Himself came in the night,
because He loved silence, and because all the world was dead. Then He
kissed things, and in the morning all that God had kissed came to life
again. If you were to get up early you would feel God's kiss on the
flowers and on the grass. And that was why the birds were singing
then. God had kissed them in the night, and they were glad.
One day Israel took Naomi to the mearrah of the Jews, the little
cemetery outside the town walls where he had buried Ruth. And there
he told her of her mother once more; that she was in the grave, but
also with God; that she was dead, but still alive; that Naomi must not
expect to find her in that place, but, nevertheless, that she would
see her yet again.
"Do you remember her, Naomi?" he said. "Do you remember her in
the old days, the old dark and silent days? Not Fatimah, and not
Habeebah, but some one who was nearer to you than either, and loved
you better than both; some one who had soft hands, and smooth cheeks,
and long, silken, wavy hair--do you remember, little one?"
"Y-es, I think--I _think_ I remember," said Naomi.
"That was your mother, my darling."
"My mother?"
"Ah, you don't know what a mother is, sweetheart. How should you?
And how shall I tell you? Listen. She is the one who loves you first
and last and always. When you are a babe she suckles you and
nourishes you and fondles you, and watches for the first light of your
smile, and listens for the first accent of your tongue. When you are a
young child she plays with you, and sings to you, and tells you little
stories, and teaches you to speak. Your smile is more bright to her
than sunshine, and your childish lisp more sweet than music. If you
are sick she is beside you constantly, and when you are well she is
behind you still. Though you sin and fall and all men spurn you, yet
she clings to you; and if you do well and God prospers you, there is
no joy like her joy. Her love never changes, for it is a fount which
the cold winds of the world cannot freeze. . . . And if you are a
little helpless girl--blind and deaf and dumb maybe--then she loves
you best of all. She cannot tell you stories, and she cannot sing to
you, because you cannot hear; she cannot smile into your eyes,
because you cannot see; she cannot talk to you, because you cannot
speak; but she can watch your quiet face, and feel the touch of your
little fingers and hear the sound of your merry laughter."
"My mother! my mother!" whispered Naomi to herself, as if in awe.
"Yes," said Israel, "your mother was like that, Naomi, long ago,
in the days before your great gifts came to you. But she is gone,
she has left us, she could not stay; she is dead, and only from the
blue mountains of memory can she smile back upon us now."
Naomi could not understand, but her fixed blue eyes filled with
tears, and she said abruptly, "People who die are deceitful. They
want to go out in the night to be with God. That is where they are
when they go away. They are wandering about the world when it is
dead."
The same night Naomi was missed out of the house, and for many
hours no search availed to find her. She was not in the Mellah, and
therefore she must have passed into the Moorish town before the gates
closed at sunset. Neither was she to be seen in the Feddan or at the
Kasbah, or among the Arabs who sat in the red glow of the fires that
burnt before their tents. At last Israel bethought him of the mearrah,
and there he found her. It was dark, and the lonesome place was
silent. The reflection of the lights of the town rose into the sky
above it, and the distant hum of voices came over the black town
walls. And there, within the straggling hedge of prickly pear, among
the long white stones that lay like sheep asleep among the grass,
Naomi in her double darkness, the darkness of the night and of her
blindness was running to and fro, and crying, "Mother! Mother!"
Fatimah took her the four miles to Marteel, that the breath of the
sea might bring colour to her cheeks, which had been whitened by the
heat and fumes of the town. The day was soft and beautiful, the water
was quiet, and only a gentle wind came creeping over it. But Naomi
listened to every sound with eager intentness--the light plash of the
blue wavelets that washed to her feet, the ripple of their crests when
the Levanter chased them and caught them, the dip of the oars of the
boatman, the rattle of the anchor-chains of ships in the bay, and the
fierce vociferations of the negroes who waded up to their waists to
unload the cargoes.
And when she came home, and took her old place at her father's
knees, with his hand between hers pressed close against her cheek,
she told him another sweet and startling story. There was only one
thing in the world that did not die at night, and it was water. That
was because water was the way from heaven to earth. It went up into
the mountains and over them into the air until it was lost in the
clouds. And God and His angels came and went on the water between
heaven and earth. That was why it was always moving and never
sleeping, and had no night and no day. And the angels were always
singing. That was why the waters were always making a noise, and were
never silent like the grass. Sometimes their song was joyful, and
sometimes it was sad, and sometimes the evil spirits were struggling
with the angels, and that was when the waters were terrible. Every
time the sea made a little noise on the shore, an angel had stepped on
to the earth. The angel was glad.
Israel had begun to listen to Naomi's fancies with a doubting
heart. Where had they come from? Was it his duty to wipe out these
beautiful dream-stories of the maid born blind and newly come upon the
joy of hearing with his own sadder tales of what the world was and
what life was, and death and heaven? The question was soon decided
for him.
Two days after Naomi had been taken to Marteel she was missed
again. Israel hurried away to the sea, and there he came upon her.
Alone, without help, she had found a boat on the beach and had pushed
off on to the water. It was a double-pronged boat, light as a
nutshell, made of ribs of rush, covered with camel-skin, and lined
with bark. In this frail craft she was afloat, and already far out in
the bay not rowing, but sitting quietly, and drifting away with the
ebbing tide. The wind was rising, and the line of the foreshore
beyond the boat was white with breakers. Israel put off after her and
rescued her. The motionless eyes began to fill when she heard his
voice.
"My darling, my darling!" cried Israel; "where did you think you
were going?"
"To heaven," she answered.
And truly she had all but gone there.
Israel had no choice left to him now. He must sadden the heart of
this creature of joy that he might keep her body safe from peril.
Naomi was no more than a little child, swayed by her impulses alone,
but in more danger from herself than any child before her, because
deprived of two of her senses until she had grown to be a maid, and no
control could be imposed upon her.
At length Israel nerved himself to his bitter task; and one evening
while Naomi sat with him on the roof while the sun was setting, and
there were noises in the streets below of the Jewish people shuffling
back into the Mellah, he told her that she was blind. The word made no
impression upon her mind at first. She had heard it before, and it
had passed her by like a sound that she did not know. She had been
born blind, and therefore could not realise what it was to see. To
open a way for the awful truth was difficult, and Israel's heart smote
him while he persisted. Naomi laughed as he put his fingers over her
eyes that he might show her. She laughed again when he asked if she
could see the people whom she could only hear. And once more she
laughed when the sun had gone down, and the mooddin had come out on
the Grand Mosque in the Metamar, and he asked if she could see the old
blind man in the minaret, where he was crying, "God is great! God is
great!"
"Can you see him, little one?" said Israel.
"See him?" said Naomi; "why yes, you dear old father, of course I
can see him. Listen," she cried, ceasing her laughter, lifting one
finger, and holding her head aslant, "listen: God is great! God is
great! There--I saw him then."
"That is only hearing him, Naomi--hearing him with your ears--
with this ear and with this. But can you see him, sweetheart?"
Did her father mean to ask her if she could _feel_ the mooddin in
his minaret far above them? Once more she laid her head aslant. There
was a pause, and then she cried impulsively--
"Oh, _I_ know. But, you foolish old father, how _can_ I? He is
too far away."
Then she flung her arms about Israel's neck and kissed him.
"There," she cried, in a tone of one who settles differences, "I
have seen my _father_ anyway."
It was hard to check her merriment, but Israel had to do it. He
told her, with many throbs in his throat, that she was not like other
maidens--not like her father, or Ali, or Fatimah, or Habeebah; that
she was a being afflicted of God; that there was something she had not
got, something she could not do, a world she did not know, and had
never yet so much as dreamt of. Darkness was more than cold and
quiet, and light was more than warmth and noise. The one was day--day
ruled by the fiery sun in the sky--and the other was night, lit by the
pale moon and the bright stars in heaven. And the face of man and the
eyes of woman were more than features to feel--they were spirit and
soul, to watch and to follow and to love without any hand being near
them.
"There is a great world about you, little one," he said, "which
you have never seen, though you can hear it and feel it and speak to
it. Yes, it is true, Naomi, it is true. You have never seen the
mountains and the dangerous gullies on their rocky sides. You have
never seen the mighty deep, and the storms that heave and swell in it.
You have never seen man or woman or child. Is that very strange,
little one? Listen: your mother died nine years ago, and you had
never seen her. Your father is holding your head in his hands at this
moment, but you have never seen his face. And if the dark curtains
were to fall from your eyes, and you were to see him now, you would
not know him from another man, or from woman, or from a tree. You are
blind, Naomi, you are blind."
Naomi listened intently. Her cheeks twitched, her fingers rested
nervously on her dress at her bosom, and her eyes grew large and
solemn, and then filled with tears. Israel's throat swelled. To tell
her of all this, though he must needs do it for her safety, was like
reproaching her with her infirmity. But it was only the trouble in
her father's voice that had found its way to the sealed chamber of
Naomi's mind. The awful and crushing truth of her blindness came later
to her consciousness, probed in and thrust home by a frailer and
lighter hand.
She had always loved little children, and since the: coming of her
hearing she had loved them more than ever. Their lisping tongues,
their pretty broken speech, their simple words, their childish
thoughts, all fitted with her own needs, for she was nothing but a
child herself, though grown to be a lovely maid. And of all children
those she loved best were not the children of the Jews, nor yet the
children of the Moorish townsfolk, but the ragged, barefoot, black and
olive-skinned mites who came into Tetuan with the country Arabs and
Berbers on market mornings. They were simplest, their little tongues
were liveliest, and they were most full of joy and wonder. So she
would gather them up in twos and threes and fours, on Wednesdays and
Sundays, from the mouths of their tents on the Feddan, and carry them
home by the hand.
And there, in the patio, Ali had hung a swing of hempen rope,
suspended from a bar thrown from parapet to parapet, and on this
Naomi would sport with her little ones. She would be swinging in the
midst of them, with one tiny black maiden on the seat beside her, and
one little black man with high stomach and shaven poll holding on to
the rope behind her, and another mighty Moor in a diminutive white
jellab pushing at their feet in front, and all laughing together, or
the children singing as the swing rose, and she herself listening with
head aslant and all her fair hair rip-rip-rippling down her back and
over her neck, and her smiling white face resting on her shoulder.
It was a beautiful scene of sunny happiness, but out of it came
the first great shadow of the blind girl's life. For it chanced one
day that one of the children--a tiny creature with a slice of the
woman in her--brought a present for Naomi out of her mother's
market-basket. It was a flower, but of a strange kind, that grew
only in the distant mountains where lay the little black one's home.
Naomi passed her fingers over it, and she did not know it.
"What is it?" she asked.
"It's blue," said the child.
"What is blue?" said Naomi
"Blue--don't you know?--blue!" said the child.
"But what is blue?" Naomi asked again, holding the flower in her
restless fingers.
"Why, dear me! can't you see?--blue--the flower, you know," said
the child, in her artless way.
Ali was standing by at the time, and he thought to come to Naomi's
relief. "Blue is a colour," he said.
"A colour?" said Naomi.
"Yes, like--like the sea," he added.
"The sea? Blue? How?" Naomi asked.
Ali tried again. "Like the sky," he said simply.
Naomi's face looked perplexed. "And what is the sky like?" she
asked.
At that moment her beautiful face was turned towards Ali's face,
and her great motionless blue orbs seemed to gaze into his eyes. The
lad was pressed hard, and he could not keep back the answer that leapt
up to his tongue. "Like," he said--"like--"
"Well?"
"Like your own eyes, Naomi."
By the old habit of her nervous fingers, she covered her eyes with
her hands, as if the sense of touch would teach her what her other
senses could not tell. But the solemn mystery had dawned on her mind
at last: that she was unlike others; that she was lacking something
that every one else possessed; that the little children who played
with her knew what she could never know; that she was infirm,
afflicted, cut off; that there was a strange and lovely and lightsome
world lying round about her, where every one else might sport and find
delight, but that her spirit could not enter it, because she was shut
off from it by the great hand of God.
From that time forward everything seemed to remind her of her
affliction, and she heard its baneful voice at all times. Even her
dreams, though they had no visions, were full of voices that told of
them. If a bird sang in the air above her, she lifted her sightless
eyes. If she walked in the town on market morning and heard the din
of traffic--the cries of the dealers, the "Balak!" of the camel-men,
the "Arrah!" of the muleteers, and the twanging ginbri of the
story-tellers--she sighed and dropped her head into her breast.
Listening to the wind, she asked if it had eyes or was sightless; and
hearing of the mountains that their snowy heads rose into the clouds,
she inquired if they were blind, and if they ever talked together in
the sky.
But at the awful revelation of her blindness she ceased to be a
child, and became a woman. In the week thereafter she had learned
more of the world than in all the years of her life before. She was
no longer a restless gleam of sunlight, a reckless spirit of joy, but
a weak, patient, blind maiden, conscious of her great infirmity,
humbled by it, and thinking shame of it.
One afternoon, deserting the swing in the patio, she went out with
the children into the fields. The day was hot, and they wandered far
down the banks and dry bed of the Marteel. And as they ran and raced,
the little black people plucked the wild flowers, and called to the
cattle and the sheep and the dogs, and whistled to the linnets that
whistled to their young.
Thus the hours went on unheeded. The afternoon passed into
evening, the evening into twilight, the twilight into early night.
Then the air grew empty like a vault, and a solemn quiet fell upon
the children, and they crept to Naomi's side in fear, and took her
hands and clung to her gown. She turned back towards the town, and as
they walked in the double silence of their own hushed tongues and the
songless and voiceless world, the fingers of the little ones closed
tightly upon her own.
Then the children cried in terror, "See!"
"What is it?" said Naomi.
The little ones could not tell her. It was only the noiseless
summer lightning, but the children had never seen it before. With
broad white flashes it lit up the land as far as from the bed of the
river in the valley to the white peaks of the mountains. At every
flash the little people shrieked in their fear, and there was no one
there to comfort them save Naomi only, and she was blind and could not
see what they saw. With helpless hands she held to their hands and
hurried home, over the darkening fields, through the palpitating
sheets of dazzling light, leading on, yet seeing nothing.
But Israel saw Naomi's shame. The blindness which was a sense of
humiliation to her became a sense of burning wrong to him. He had
asked God to give her speech, and had promised to be satisfied. "Give
her speech, O Lord," he had cried, "speech that shall lift her above
the creatures of the field, speech whereby alone she may ask and
know." But what was speech without sight to her who had always been
blind? What was all the world to one who had never seen it? Only as
Paradise is to Man, who can but idly dream of its glories.
Israel took back his prayer. There were things to know that words
could never tell. Now was Naomi blind for the first time, being no
longer dumb. "Give her sight, O Lord," he cried; "open her eyes that
she may see; let her look on Thy beautiful world and know it! Then
shall her life be safe, and her heart be happy, and her soul be Thine,
and Thy servant at last be satisfied!"
It was six-and-twenty days since the night of the meeting on the
Sok, and no rain had yet fallen. The eggs of the locust might be
hatched at any time. Then the wingless creatures would rise on the
face of the earth like snow, and the poor lean stalks of wheat and
barley that were coming green out of the ground would wither before
them. The country people were in despair. They were all but stripped
of their cattle; they had no milk; and they came afoot to the market.
Death seemed to look them in the face. Neither in the mosques nor in
the synagogues did they offer petitions to God for rain. They had long
ceased their prayers. Only in the Feddan at the mouths of their tents
did they lift up their heavy eyes to the hot haze of the pitiless sky
and mutter, "It is written!"
Israel was busy with other matters. During these six-and-twenty
days he had been asking himself what it was right and needful that he
should do. He had concluded at length that it was his duty to give up
the office he held under the Kaid. No longer could he serve two
masters. Too long had he held to the one, thinking that by recompense
and restitution, by fair dealing and even-handed justice, he might
atone to the other. Recompense was a mockery of the sufferings which
had led to death; restitution was no longer possible--his own purse
being empty--without robbery of the treasury of his master; fair
dealing and even justice were a vain hope in Barbary, where every man
who held office, from the heartless Sultan in his hareem to the pert
Mut'hasseb in the market, must be only as a human torture-jellab, made
and designed to squeeze the life-blood out of the man beneath him.
To endure any longer the taunts and laughter of Ben Aboo was
impossible, and to resist the covetous importunities of his Spanish
woman, Katrina, was a waste of shame and spirit. Besides, and above
all, Israel remembered that God had given him grace in the sacrifices
which he had made already. Twice had God rewarded him, in the mercy
He had shown to Naomi, for putting by the pomp and circumstance of the
world. Would His great hand be idle now--now when he most needed its
mighty and miraculous power when Naomi, being conscious of her
blindness, was mourning and crying for sweet sight of the world and he
himself was about to put under his feet the last of his possessions
that separated him from other men--his office that he wrought for in
the early days with sweat of brow and blood, and held on to in the
later days through evil report and hatred, that he might conquer the
fate that had first beaten him down!
Israel was in the way of bribing God again, forgetting, in the heat
of his desire, the shame of his journey to Shawan. He made his
preparations, and they were few. His money was gone already, and so
were his dead wife's jewels. He had determined that he would keep his
house, if only as a shelter to Naomi (for he owed something to her
material comfort as well as her spiritual welfare), but that its
furniture and belongings were more luxurious than their necessity
would require or altered state allow.
So he sold to a Jewish merchant in the Mellah the couches and
great chairs which he had bought out of England, as well as the
carpets from Rabat, the silken hangings from Fez, and the purple
canopies from Morocco city. When these were gone, and nothing
remained but the simple rugs and mattresses which are all that the
house of a poor man needs in that land where the skies are kind, he
called his servants to him as he sat in the patio--Ali as well as the
two bondwomen--for he had decided that he must part with them also,
and they must go their ways.
"My good people," he said, "you have been true and faithful
servants to me this many a year--you, Fatimah, and you also, Habeebah,
since before the days when my wife came to me--and you too, Ali, my
lad, since you grew to be big and helpful. Little I thought to part
with you until my good time should come; but my life in our poor
Barbary is over already, and to-morrow I shall be less than the least
of all men in Tetuan. So this is what I have concluded to do. You,
Fatimah, and you, Habeebah, being given to me as bondwomen by the Kaid
in the old days when my power, which now is little and of no moment,
was great and necessary--you belong to me. Well, I give you your
liberty. Your papers are in the name of Ben Aboo, and I have sealed
them with his seal--that is the last use but one that I shall put it
to. Here they are, both of them. Take them to the Kadi after prayers
in the morning, and he will ratify your title. Then you will be free
women for ever after."
The black women had more than once broken in upon Israel's words
with exclamations of surprise and consternation. "Allah!"
"Bismillah!" "Holy Saints!" "By the beard of the Prophet!" And when
at length he put the deeds of emancipation into their hands they fell
into loud fits of hysterical weeping.
"As for you, Ali, my son," Israel continued, "I cannot give you
your freedom, for you are a freeman born. You have been a son to me
these fourteen years. I have another task for you--a perilous task,
a solemn duty--and when it is done I shall see you no more. My brave
boy, you will go far, but I do not fear for you. When you are gone I
shall think of you; and if you should sometimes think of your old
master who could not keep you, we may not always be apart."
The lad had listened to these words in blank bewilderment. That
strange disasters had of late befallen their household was an idea
that had forced itself upon his unwilling mind. But that Israel, the
greatest, noblest, mightiest man in the world--let the dogs of rasping
Jews and the scurvy hounds of Moors yelp and bark as they
would--should fall to be less than the least in Tetuan, and, having
fallen that he should send him away--him, Ali, his boy whom he had
brought up, Naomi's old playfellow--Allah! Allah! in the name of the
merciful God, what did his master mean?
Ali's big eyes began to fill, and great beads rolled down his
black cheeks. Then, recovering his speech he blurted out that he
would not go. He would follow his father and serve him until the end
of his life. What did he want with wages? Who asked for any? No
going his ways for him! A pretty thing, wasn't it, that he should go
off, and never see his father again, no, nor
Naomi--Naomi--that-that--but God would show! God would show!
And, following Ali's lead, Fatimah stepped up to Israel and offered
her paper back. "Take it," she said; "I don't want any liberty. I've
got liberty enough as I am. And here--here," fumbling in her
waistband and bringing out a knitted purse; "I would have offered it
before, only I thought shame. My wages? Yes. You've paid us wages
these nine years, haven't you; and what right had we to any, being
slaves? You will not take it, my lord? Well, then, my dear master,
if I must go, if I must leave you, take my papers and sell me to some
one. I shall not care, and you have a right to do it. Perhaps I'll
get another good master--who knows?"
Her brows had been knitted, and she had tried to look stern and
angry, but suddenly her cheeks were a flood of tears.
"I'm a fool!" she cried. "I'll never get a good master again; but
if I get a bad one, and he beats me, I'll not mind, for I'll think of
you, and my precious jewel of gold and silver, my pretty gazelle,
Naomi--Allah preserve her!--that you took my money, and I'm bearing it
for both of you, as we might say--working for you--night and
day--night and day--"
Israel could endure no more. He rose up and fled out of the patio
into his own room, to bury his swimming face. But his soul was big
and triumphant. Let the world call him by what names it
would--tyrant, traitor, outcast pariah--there were simple hearts that
loved and honoured him--ay, honoured him--and they were the hearts
that knew him best.
The perilous task reserved for Ali was to go to Shawan and to
liberate the followers of Absalam, who, less happy than their leader,
whose strong soul was at rest, were still in prison without abatement
of the miseries they lay under. He was to do this by power of a
warrant addressed to the Kaid of Shawan and drawn under the seal of
the Kaid of Tetuan. Israel had drawn it, and sealed it also, without
the knowledge or sanction of Ben Aboo; for, knowing what manner of man
Ben Aboo was, and knowing Katrina also, and the sway she held over
him, and thinking it useless to attempt to move either to mercy, he
had determined to make this last use of his office, at all risks and
hazards.
Ben Aboo might never hear that the people were at large, for Ali
was to forbid them to return to Tetuan, and Shawan was sixty weary
miles away. And if he ever did hear, Israel himself would be there to
bear the brunt of his displeasure, but Ali the instrument of his
design, must be far away. For when the gates of the prison had been
opened, and the prisoners had gone free, Ali was neither to come back
to Tetuan nor to remain in Morocco, but with the money that Israel
gave him out of the last wreck of his fortune he was to make haste to
Gibraltar by way of Ceuta, and not to consider his life safe until he
had set foot in England.
"England!" cried Ali. "But they are all white men there."
"White-hearted men, my lad," said Israel; "and a Jewish man may
find rest for the sole of his foot among them."
That same day the black boy bade farewell to Israel and to Naomi.
He was leaving them for ever, and he was broken-hearted. Israel was
his father, Naomi was his sister, and never again should he set his
eyes on either. But in the pride of his perilous mission he bore
himself bravely.
"Well, good-night," he said, taking Naomi's hand, but not looking
into her blind face.
"Good-night," she answered, and then, after a moment, she flung her
arms about his neck and kissed him. He laughed lightly, and turned to
Israel.
"Good-night, father," he said in a shrill voice.
"A safe journey to you, my son," said Israel; "and may you do all
my errands."
"God burn my great-grandfather if I do not!" said Ali stoutly.
But with that word of his country his brave bearing at length broke
down, and drawing Israel aside, that Naomi might not hear, he
whispered, sobbing and stammering, "When--when I am gone, don't, don't
tell her that I was black."
Then in an instant he fled away.
"In peace!" cried Israel after him. "In peace! my brave boy,
simple, noble, loyal heart!"
Next morning Israel, leaving Naomi at home, set off for the Kasbah,
that he might carry out his great resolve to give up the office he
held under the Kaid. And as he passed through the streets his head
was held up, and he walked proudly. A great burden had fallen from
him, and his spirit was light. The people bent their heads before him
as he passed, and scowled at him when he was gone by. The beggars
lying at the gate of the Mosque spat over their fingers behind his
back, and muttered "Bismillah! In the name of God!" A negro farmer in
the Feddan, who was bent double over a hoof as he was shoeing a bony
and scabby mule, lifted his ugly face, bathed in sweat, and grinned at
Israel as he went along. A group of Reefians, dirty and lean and
hollow-eyed, feeding their gaunt donkeys, and glancing anxiously at
the sky over the heads of the mountains, snarled like dogs as he
strode through their midst. The sky was overcast, and the heads of the
mountains were capped with mist. "Balak!" sounded in Israel's ears
from every side. "Arrah!" came constantly at his heels. A
sweet-seller with his wooden tray swung in front of him, crying,
"Sweets, all sweets, O my lord Edrees, sweets, all sweets," changed
the name of the patron saint of candies, and cried, "Sweets, all
sweets, O my lord Israel, sweets, all sweets!" The girl selling clay
peered up impudently into Israel's eyes, and the oven-boy, answering
the loud knocking of the bodiless female arms thrust out at doors
standing ajar, made his wordless call articulate with a mocking echo
of Israel's name.
What matter? Israel could not be wroth with the poor people.
Six-and-twenty years he had gone in and out among them as a slave.
This morning he was a free man, and to-morrow he would be one of
themselves.
When he reached the Kasbah, there was something in the air about
it that brought back recollections of the day--now nearly four years
past--of the children's gathering at Katrina's festival. The
lusty-lunged Arabs squatting at the gates among soldiers in white
selhams and peaked shasheeahs the women in blankets standing in the
outer court, the dark passages smelling of damp, the gusts of heavy
odour coming from the inner chambers, and the great patio with the
fountain and fig-trees--the same voluptuous air was over everything.
And as on that day so on this, in the alcove under the horseshoe arch
sat Ben Aboo and his Spanish wife.
Time had dealt with them after their kind, and the swarthy face of
the Kaid was grosser, the short curls under his turban were more grey
and his hazel eyes were now streaked and bleared, but otherwise he
was the same man as before, and Katrina also, save for the loss of
some teeth of the upper row, was the same woman. And if the children
had risen up before Israel's eyes as he stood on the threshold of the
patio, he could not have drawn his breath with more surprise than at
the sight of the man who stood that morning in their place.
It was Mohammed of Mequinez. He had come to ask for the release
of the followers of Absalam from their prison at Shawan. In defiance
of courtesy his slippers were on his feet. He was clad in a piece of
untanned camel-skin, which reached to his knees and was belted about
his waist. His head, which was bare to the sun and drooped by nature
like a flower, was held proudly up, and his wild eyes were flashing.
He was not supplicating for the deliverance of the people, but
demanding it, and taxing Ben Aboo as a tyrant to his throat.
"Give me them up, Ben Aboo," he was saying as Israel came to the
threshold, "or, if they die in their prison, one thing I promise you."
"And pray what is that?" said Ben Aboo.
"That there will be a bloody inquiry after their murderer."
Ben Aboo's brows were knitted, but he only glanced at Katrina, and
made pretence to laugh, and then said, "And pray, my lord, who shall
the murderer be?"
Then Mohammed of Mequinez stretched out his hand and answered,
"Yourself."
At that word there-was silence for a moment, while Ben Aboo shifted
in his seat, and Katrina quivered beside him.
Ben Aboo glanced up at Mohammed. He was Kaid, he was Basha, he
was master of all men within a circuit of thirty miles, but he was
afraid of this man whom the people called a prophet. And partly out of
this fear, and partly because he had more regard to Mohammed's
courageous behaviour in thus bearding him in his Kasbah and by the
walls of his dungeons than to the anger his hot word had caused him,
Ben Aboo would have promised him at that moment that the prisoners at
Shawan should be released.
But suddenly Katrina remembered that she also had cause of
indignation against this man, for it had been rumoured of late that
Mohammed had openly denounced her marriage.
"Wait, Sidi," she said. "Is not this the fellow that has gone up
and down your bashalic, crying out on our marriage that it was against
the law of Mohammed?"
At that Ben Aboo saw clearly that there was no escape for him, so
he made pretence to laugh again, and said, "Allah! so it is! Mohammed
the Third, eh? Son of Mequinez, God will repay you! Thanks! Thanks!
You could never think how long I've waited that I might look face to
face upon the prophet that has denounced a Kaid."
He uttered these big words between bursts of derisive laughter,
but Mohammed struck the laughter from his lips in an instant. "Wait
no longer, O Ben Aboo," he cried, "but look upon him now, and know
that what you have done is an unclean thing, and you shall be
childless and die!"
Then Ben Aboo's passion mastered him. He rose to his feet in his
anger, and cried, "Prophet, you have destroyed yourself. Listen to
me! The turbulent dogs you plead for shall lie in their prison until
they perish of hunger and rot of their sores. By the beard of my
father, I swear it!"
Mohammed did not flinch. Throwing back his head, he answered, "If
I am a prophet, O Ben Aboo hear me prophesy. Before that which you
say shall come to pass, both you and your father's house will be
destroyed. Never yet did a tyrant go happily out of the world, and
you shall go out of it like a dog."
Then Katrina also rose to her feet, and, calling to a group of
barefooted Arab soldiers that stood near, she cried, "Take him! He
will escape!"
But the soldiers did not move, and Ben Aboo fell back on his seat,
and Mohammed, fearing nothing, spoke again.
"In a vision of last night I saw you, O Ben Aboo and for the
contempt you had cast upon our holy laws, and for the destruction you
had wrought on our poor people, the sword of vengeance had fallen upon
you. And within this very court, and on that very spot where your feet
now rest, your whole body did lie; and that woman beside you lay over
you wailing and your blood was on her face and on her hands, and only
she was with you, for all else had forsaken you--all save one, and
that was your enemy, and he had come to see you with his eyes, and to
rejoice over you with his heart, because you were fallen and dead."
Then, in the creeping of his terror, Ben Aboo rose up again and
reeled backward and his eyes were fixed steadfastly downward at his
feet where the eyes of Mohammed had rested. It was almost as if he
saw the awful thing of which Mohammed had spoken, so strong was the
power of the vision upon him.
But recovering himself quickly, he cried, "Away! In the name of
God, away!"
"I will go," said Mohammed; "and beware what you do while I am
gone."
"Do you threaten me?" cried Ben Aboo. "Will you go to the Sultan?
Will you appeal to Abd er-Rahman?"
"No, Ben Aboo; but to God."
So saying, Mohammed of Mequinez strode out of the place, for no
man hindered him. Then Ben Aboo sank back on to his seat as one that
was speechless, and nothing had the crimson on his body availed him,
or the silver on his breast, against that simple man in camel-skin,
who owned nothing and asked nothing, and feared neither Kaid nor King.
When Ben Aboo had regained himself, he saw Israel standing at the
doorway, and he beckoned to him with the downward motion, which is the
Moorish manner. And rising on his quaking limbs he took him aside and
said, "I know this fellow. Ya Allah! Allah! For all his vaunts and
visions he has gone to Abd er-Rahman. God will show! God will show!
I dare not take him! Abd er-Rahman uses him to spy and pry on his
Bashas! Camel-skin coat? Allah! a fine disguise! Bismillah!
Bismillah!"
Then, looking back at the place where Mohammed in the vision saw
his body lie outstretched, he dropped his voice to a whisper, and
said, "Listen! You have my seal?"
Israel without a word, put his hand into the pocket of his
waistband, and drew out the seal of Ben Aboo.
"Right! Now hear me, in the name of the merciful God. Do not
liberate these infidel dogs at Shawan and do not give them so much as
bread to eat or water to drink, but let such as own them feed them.
And if ever the thing of which that fellow has spoken should come to
pass--do you hear?--in the hour wherein it befalls-- Allah preserve
me!--in that hour draw a warrant on the Kaid of Shawan and seal it
with my seal--are you listening?--a warrant to put every man, woman,
and child to the sword. Ya Allah! Allah! We will deal with these
spies of Abd er-Rahman! So shall there be mourning at my burial--Holy
Saints! Holy Saints!--mourning, I say, among them that look for joy
at my death."
Thus in a quaking voice, sometimes whispering, and again breaking
into loud exclamations, Ben Aboo in his terror poured his broken words
into Israel's ear.
Israel made no answer. His eyes had become dim--he scarcely saw
the walls of the place wherein they stood. His ears had become
dense--he scarcely heard the voice of Ben Aboo, though the Kaid's hot
breath was beating upon his cheek. But through the haze he saw the
shadow of one figure tramping furiously to and fro, and through the
thick air the voice of another figure came muffled and harsh. For
Katrina, having chased away with smiles the evil looks of Ben Aboo,
had turned to Israel and was saying--
"What is this I hear of your beautiful daughter--this Naomi of
yours--that she has recovered her speech and hearing! When did that
happen, pray? No answer? Ah, I see, you are tired of the deception.
You kept it up well between you. But is she still blind? So? Dear
me! Blind, poor child. Think of it!"
Israel neither answered nor looked up, but stood motionless on the
same place, holding the seal in his hand. And Ben Aboo, in his
restless tramping up and down, came to him again, and said, "Why are
you a Jew, Israel ben Oliel? The dogs of your people hate you.
Witness to the Prophet! Resign yourself! Turn Muslim, man--what's
to hinder you?"
Still Israel made no reply. But Ben Aboo continued: "Listen! The
people about me are in the pay of the Sultan, and after all you are
the best servant I have ever had. Say the Kelmah, and I'll make you
my Khaleefa. Do you hear?--my Khaleefa, with power equal to my own.
Man, why don't you speak? Are you grown stupid of late as well as
weak and womanish?"
"Basha," said Israel--he spoke slowly and quietly; but with forced
calmness--"Basha, you must seek another hand for work like that--this
hand of mine shall never seal that warrant."
"Tut, man!" whispered Ben Aboo. "Do your new measles break out
everywhere? Am I not Kaid? Can I not make you my Khaleefa?"
Israel's face was worn and pale, but his eye burned with the fire
of his great resolve.
"Basha," he said again calmly and quietly, "if you were Sultan and
could make me your Vizier, I would not do it."
"Why?" cried Ben Aboo; "why? why?"
"Because," said Israel, "I am here to deliver up your seal to you."
"You? Grace of God!" cried Ben Aboo.
"I am here," continued Israel, as calmly as before, "to resign my
office."
"Resign your office? Deliver up your seal?" cried Ben Aboo. "Man,
man, are you mad?"
"No, Basha, not to-day," said Israel quietly. "I must have been
that when I came here first, five-and-twenty years ago."
Ben Aboo gnawed his lip and scowled darkly, and in the flush of his
anger, his consternation being over, he would have fallen upon Israel
with torrents of abuse, but that he was smitten suddenly by a new and
terrible thought. Quivering and trembling, and muttering short
prayers under his breath, he recoiled from the place where Israel
stood, and said, "There is something under all this? What is it? Let
me think! Let me think!"
Meantime the face of Katrina beneath its covering of paint had
grown white, and in scarcely smothered tones of wrath, by the swift
instinct of a suspicious nature, she was asking herself the same
question, "What does it mean? What does it mean?"
In another moment Ben Aboo had read the riddle his own way.
"Wait!" he cried, looking vainly for help and answer into the faces
of his people about him. "Who said that when he was away from Tetuan
he went to Fez? The Sultan was there then. He had just come up from
Soos. That's it! I knew it! The man is like all the rest of them.
Abd er-Rahman has bought him. Allah! Allah! What have I done that
every soul that eats my bread should spy and pry on me?"
Satisfied with this explanation of Israel's conduct, Ben Aboo
waited for no further assurance, but fell to a wild outburst of
mingled prayers and protests. "O Giver of Good to all! O Creator!
It is Abd er-Rahman again. Ya Allah! Ya Allah! Or else his
rapacious satellites--his thieves, his robbers, his cut-throats! That
bloated Vizier! That leprous Naib es-Sultan! Oh, I know them.
Bismillah! They want to fleece me. They want to squeeze me of my
little wealth--my just savings--my hard earnings after my long
service. Curse them! Curse their relations! O Merciful! O
Compassionate! They'll call it arrears of taxes. But no, by the beard
of my father, no! Not one fels shall they have if I die for it. I'm
an old soldier--they shall torture me. Yes, the bastinado, the
jellab--but I'll stand firm! Allah! Allah! Bismillah! Why does Abd
er-Rahman hate me? It's because I'm his brother--that's it, that's
it! But I've never risen against him. Never, never! I've paid him
all! All! I tell you I've paid everything. I've got nothing left.
You know it yourself, Israel, you know it."
Thus, in the crawling of his fear he cried with maudlin tears,
pleaded and entreated and threatened fumbling meantime the beads of
his rosary and tramping nervously to and fro about the patio until he
drew up at length, with a supplicating look, face to face with Israel.
And if anything had been needed to fix Israel to his purpose of
withdrawing for ever from the service of Ben Aboo, he must have found
it in this pitiful spectacle of the Kaid's abject terror, his quick
suspicion, his base disloyalty, and rancorous hatred of his own
master, the Sultan.
But, struggling to suppress his contempt, Israel said, speaking as
slowly and calmly as at first, "Basha, have no fear; I have not sold
myself to Abd er-Rahman. It is true that I was at Fez--but not to see
the Sultan. I have never seen him. I am not his spy. He knows
nothing of me. I know nothing of him, and what I am doing now is
being done for myself alone."
Hearing this, and believing it, for, liars and prevaricators as
were the other men about him, Israel had never yet deceived him, Ben
Aboo made what poor shift he could to cover his shame at the sorry
weakness he had just betrayed. And first he gazed in a sort of stupor
into Israel's steadfast face; and then he dropped his evil eyes, and
laughed in scorn of his own words, as if trying to carry them off by a
silly show of braggadocio, and to make believe that they had been no
more than a humorous pretence, and that no man would be so simple as
to think he had truly meant them. But, after this mockery, he turned
to Israel again, and, being relieved of his fears, he fell back to his
savage mood once more, without disguise and without shame.
"And pray, sir," said he, with a ghastly smile, "what riches have
you gathered that you are at last content to hoard no more?"
"None," said Israel shortly.
Ben Aboo laughed lustily, and exchanged looks of obvious meaning
with Katrina.
"And pray, again," he said, with a curl of the lip, "without office
and without riches how may you hope to live?"
"As a poor man among poor men," said Israel, "serving God and
trusting to His mercy."
Again Ben Aboo laughed hoarsely, and Katrina joined him, but
Israel stood quiet and silent, and gave no sign.
"Serving God is hard bread," said Ben Aboo.
"Serving the devil is crust!" said Israel.
At that answer, though neither by look nor gesture had Israel
pointed it, the face of Ben Aboo became suddenly discoloured and
stern.
"Allah! What do you mean?" he cried. "Who are you that you dare
wag your insolent tongue at me?"
"I am your scapegoat, Basha," said Israel, with an awful calm--"
your scapegoat, who bears your iniquities before the eyes of your
people. Your scapegoat, who sins against them and oppresses them and
brings them by bitter tortures to the dust and death. That's what I
am, Basha, and have long been, shame upon me! And while I am down
yonder in the streets among your people--hated, reviled, despised,
spat upon, cut off--you are up here in the Kasbah above them, in
honour and comfort and wealth, and the mistaken love of all men."
While Israel said this, Ben Aboo in his fury came down upon him
from the opposite side of the patio with a look of a beast of prey.
His swarthy cheeks were drawn hard, his little bleared eyes flashed,
his heavy nose and thick lips and massive jaw quivered visibly, and
from under his turban two locks of iron-grey fell like a shaggy mane
over his ears.
But Israel did not flinch. With a look of quiet majesty, standing
face to face with the tyrant, not a foot's length between them, he
spoke again and said, "Basha, I do not envy you, but neither will I
share your business nor your rewards. I mean to be your scapegoat no
more. Here is your seal. It is red with the blood of your unhappy
people through these five-and-twenty bad years past. I can carry it no
longer. Take it."
In a tempest of wrath Ben Aboo struck the seal out of Israel's hand
as he offered it, and the silver rolled and rang on the tiled pavement
of the patio.
"Fool!" he cried. "So this is what it is! Allah! In the name of
the most merciful God, who would have believed it? Israel ben Oliel a
prophet! A prophet of the poor! O Merciful! O Compassionate!"
Thus, in his frenzy, pretending to imitate with airs of manifest
mockery his outbreak of fear a few minutes before, Ben Aboo raved and
raged and lifted his clenched fist to the sky in sham imprecation of
God.
"Who said it was the Sultan?" he cried again. "He was a fool. Abd
er-Rahman? No; but Mohammed of Mequinez! Mohammed the Third! That's
it! That's it!"
So saying, and forgetting in his fury what he had said before of
Mohammed himself, he laughed wildly, and beat about the patio from
side to side like a caged and angry beast.
"And if I am a tyrant," he said in a thick voice, "who made me so?
If I oppress the poor, who taught me the way to do it? Whose clever
brain devised new means of revenue? Ransoms, promissory notes, bonds,
false judgments--what did I know of such things? Who changed the
silver dollars at nine ducats apiece? And who bought up the debts of
the people that murmured against such robbery? Allah! Allah! Whose
crafty head did all this? Why, yours--yours--Israel ben Oliel! By
the beard of the Prophet, I swear it!"
Israel stood unmoved, and when these reproaches were hurled at him,
he answered calmly and sadly, "God's ways are not our ways, neither
are His thoughts our thoughts. He works His own will, and we are but
His ministers. I thought God's justice had failed, but it has
overtaken myself. For what I did long ago of my own free will and
intention to oppress the poor, I have suffered and still am suffering."
All this time the Spanish wife of Ben Aboo had sat in the alcove
with lips whitening under their crimson patches of paint, beating her
fan restlessly on the empty air, and breathing rapid and audible
breath. And now, at this last word of Israel, though so sadly spoken,
and so solemn in its note of suffering, she broke into a trill of
laughter, and said lightly, "Ah! I thought your love of the poor was
young. Not yet cut its teeth, poor thing! A babe in swaddling
clothes, eh? When was it born?"
"About the time that you were, madam," said Israel, lifting his
heavy eyes upon her.
At that her lighter mood gave place to quick anger. "Husband," she
cried, turning upon Ben Aboo with the bitterness of reproach, "I hope
you now see that I was right about this insolent old man. I told you
from the first what would come of him. But no, you would have your
own foolish way. It was easy to see that the devil's dues were in
him. Yet you would not believe me! You would believe him. Simpleton
as you are, you are believing him now! The poor? Fiddle-faddle and
fiddlesticks! I tell you again this man is trying to put his foot on
your neck. How? Oh, trust him, he's got his own schemes! Look to
it, El Arby, look to it! He'll be master in Tetuan yet!"
Saying this, she had wrought herself up to a pitch of wrath,
sometimes laughing wildly, and then speaking in a voice that was like
an angry cry. And now, rising to her feet and facing towards the
Arab soldiers, who stood aside in silence and wonder, she cried,
"Arabs, Berbers, Moors, Christians, fight as you will, follow the
Basha as you may, you'll lie in the same bed yet! But where? Under
the heels of the Jew!"
A hoarse murmur ran from lip to lip among the men, and the ghostly
smile came back into the face of Ben Aboo.
"You must be right," he said, "you must be right! Ya Allah! Ya
Allah! This is the dog that I picked out of the mire. I found him a
beggar, and I gave him wealth. An impostor, a personator, a cheat,
and I gave him place and rank. When he had no home, I housed him,
and when he could find no one to serve him, I gave him slaves. I have
banished his enemies, and imprisoned those he hated. After his wife
had died, and none came near him, and he was left to howk out her
grave with his own hands, I gave him prisoners to bury her, and when
he was done with them I set them free. All these years I have heaped
fortune upon him. Ya Allah! His master! No, but his servant, doing
his will at the lifting of his finger. And all for what? For this!
For this! For this! Ingrate!" he cried in his thick voice, turning
hotly upon Israel again, "if you must give up your seal, why should
you do it like a fool? Could you not come to me and say, 'Kaid, I am
old and weary; I am rich, and have enough; I have served you long and
faithfully; let me rest'--why not? I say, why not?"
Israel answered calmly, "Because it would have been a lie, Basha."
"So it would," cried Ben Aboo sharply, "so it would: you are
right-- it would have been a lie, an accursed lie! But why must you
come to me and say, 'Basha, you are a tyrant, and have made me a
tyrant also; you have sucked the blood of your people, and made me to
drink it'"
"Because it is true, Basha," said Israel.
At that Ben-Aboo stopped suddenly, and his swarthy face grew
hideous and awful. Then, pointing with one shaking hand at the
farther end of the patio, he said, "There is another thing that is
true. It is true that on the other side of that wall there is a
prison," and, lifting his voice to a shriek, he added, "you are on the
edge of a gulf, Israel ben Oliel. One step more--"
But just at that moment Israel turned full upon him, face to face,
and the threat that he was about to utter seemed to die in his
stifling throat. If only he could have provoked Israel to anger he
might have had his will of him. But that slow, impassive manner, and
that worn countenance so noble in sadness and suffering, was like a
rebuke of his passion, and a retort upon his words.
And truly it seemed to Israel that against the Basha's story of
his ingratitude he could tell a different tale. This pitiful slave of
rage and fear, this thing of rags and patches, this whining, maudlin,
shrieking, bleating, barking-creature that hurled reproaches at him,
was the master in whose service he had spent his best brain and best
blood. But for the strong hand that he had lent him, but for the cool
head wherewith he had guarded him, where would the man be now? In the
dungeons of Abd er-Rahman, having gone thither by way of the Sultan's
wooden jellabs and his houses of fierce torture. By the mind's eye
Israel could see him there at that instant--sightless, eyeless,
hungry, gaunt. But no, he was still here--fat, sleek, voluptuous,
imperious. And good men lay perishing in his prisons, and children,
starved to death, lay in their graves, and he himself, his servant and
scapegoat, whose brains he had drained, whose blood he had sweated,
stood before him there like an old lion, who had been wandering far
and was beaten back by his cubs.
But what matter? He could silence the Basha with a word; yet why
should he speak it? Twenty times he had saved this man, who could
neither read nor write nor reckon figures, from the threatened
penalties of the Shereefean Court, and he could count them all up to
him; yet why should he do so? Through five-and-twenty evil years he
had built up this man's house; yet why should he boast of what was
done, being done so foully? He had said his say, and it was enough.
This hour of insult and outrage had been written on his forehead, and
he must have come to it. Then courage! courage!
"Husband," cried the woman, showing her toothless jaw in a bitter
smile to Ben Aboo as he crossed the patio, "you must scour this
vermin out of Tetuan!"
"You are right," he answered. "By Allah, you are right! And
henceforth I will be served by soldiers, not by scribblers."
Then, wheeling about once more to where Israel stood, he said in a
voice of mockery, "Master, my lord, my Sultan, you came to resign your
office? But you shall do more than that. You shall resign your house
as well, and all that's in it, and leave this town as a beggar."
Israel stood unmoved. "As you will," he said quietly.
"Where are the two women--the slaves?" asked Ben Aboo.
"At home," said Israel.
"They are mine, and I take them back," said Ben Aboo.
Israel's face quivered, and he seemed to be about to protest, but
he only drew a longer breath, and said again, "As you will, Basha."
Ben Aboo's voice gathered vehemence at every fresh question.
"Where is your money?" he cried; "the money that you have made out of
my service--out of me--_my_ money--where is it?"
"Nowhere," said Israel.
"It's a lie--another lie!" cried Ben Aboo. "Oh yes, I've heard of
your charities, master. They were meant to buy over my people, were
they? Were they? Were they, I ask?"
"So you say, Basha," said Israel.
"So I know!" cried Ben Aboo; "but all you had is not gone that way.
You're a fool, but not fool enough for that! Give up your keys--the
keys of your house!"
Israel hesitated, and then said, "Let me return for a minute-- it
is all I ask."
At that the woman laughed hysterically. "Ah! he has something left
after all!" she cried.
Israel turned his slow eyes upon her, and said, "Yes, madam, I
_have_ something left--after all."
Paying no heed to the reply, Katrina cried to Ben Aboo again,
saying, "El Arby, make him give up the key of that house. He has
treasure there!"
"It is true, madam," said Israel; "it is true that I have a
treasure there. My daughter--my little blind Naomi."
"Is that all?" cried Katrina and Ben Aboo together.
"It is all," said Israel, "but it is enough. Let me fetch her."
"Don't allow it!" cried Katrina.
Israel's face betrayed feeling. He was struggling to suppress it.
"Make me homeless if you will," he said, "turn me like a beggar out
of your town, but let me fetch my daughter."
"She'll not thank you," cried Katrina.
"She loves me," said Israel, "I am growing old, I am numbering the
steps of death. I need her joyous young life beside me in my
declining age. Then, she is helpless, she is blind, she is my
scapegoat, Basha, as I am yours, and no one save her father--"
"Ah! Ah! Ah!"
Israel had spoken warmly, and at the tender fibres of feeling that
had been forced out of him at last the woman was laughing derisively.
"Trust me," she cried, "I know what daughters are. Girls like better
things. No, I'll give her what will be more to her taste. She shall
stay here with me."
Israel drew himself up to his full height and answered, "Madam, I
would rather see her dead at my feet."
Then Ben Aboo broke in and said, "Don't wag your tongue at your
mistress, sir."
"_Your_ mistress, Basha," said Israel; "not mine."
At that word Katrina, with all her evil face aflame came sweeping
down upon Israel, and struck him with her fan on the forehead. He did
not flinch or speak. The blow had burst the skin, and a drop of blood
trickled over the temple on to the cheek. There was a short deep
pause.
Then the hard tension of silence was broken by a faint cry. It
came from behind, from the doorway; it was the voice of a girl.
In the blank stupor of the moment, every eye being on the two that
stood in the midst, no one had observed until then that another had
entered the patio. It was Naomi. How long she had been there no one
knew, and how she had come unnoticed through the corridors out of the
streets scarce any one--even when time sufficed to arrange the
scattered thoughts of the Makhazni, the guard at the gate--could
clearly tell. She stood under the arch, with one hand at her breast,
which heaved visibly with emotion, and the other hand stretched out
to touch the open iron-clamped door, as if for help and guidance. Her
head was held up, her lips were apart, and her motionless blind eyes
seemed to stare wildly. She had heard the hot words. She had heard
the sound of the blow that followed them. Her father was smitten!
Her father! Her father! It was then that she uttered the cry. All
eyes turned to her. Quaking, reeling, almost falling, she came
tottering down the patio. Soul and sense seemed to be struggling
together in her blind face. What did it all mean? What was happening?
Her fixed eyes stared as if they must burst the bonds that bound
them, and look and see, and know!
At that moment God wrought a mighty work, a wondrous change, such
as He has brought to pass but twice or thrice since men were born
blind into His world of light. In an instant, at a thought, by one
spontaneous flash, as if the spirit of the girl tore down the dark
curtains which had hung for seventeen years over the windows of her
eyes, Naomi saw!
They all knew it at once. It seemed to them as if every feature
of the girl's face had leapt into her eyes; as if the expression of
her lips, her brow, her nostrils, had sprung to them: as if her face,
so fair before, so full of quivering feeling, must have been nothing
until then but a blank. Nay, but they seemed to see her now for the
first time. This, only this, was she!
And to Naomi also, at that moment, it was almost as if she had been
newly born into life. She was meeting the world at last face to face,
eye to eye. Into her darkened chamber, that had never known the
light, everything had entered at a blow--the white glare of the sun,
the blue sky, the tiled patio, the faces of the Kaid and his wife and
his soldiers, and of the old man also, with the unshed tears hanging
on the fringe of his eyelid. She could not realise the marvel. She
did not know what vision was. She had not learned to see. Her
trembling soul had gone out from its dark chamber and met the mighty
light in his mansion. "Oh! oh!" she cried, and stood bewildered and
helpless in the midst. The picture of the world seemed to be falling
upon her, and she covered her eyes with her hands, that she might
abolish it altogether.
Israel saw everything. "Naomi!" he cried in a choking voice, and
stretched out his hands to her. Then she uncovered her eyes, and
looked, and paused and hesitated.
"Naomi!" he cried again, and made a step towards her. She covered
her eyes once more that she might shut out the stranger they showed
her, and only listen to the voice that she knew so well. Then she
staggered into her father's arms. And Israel's heart was big, and he
gathered her to his breast, and, turning towards the woman, he said,
"Madam, we are in the hands of God. Look! See! He has sent His
angel to protect His servant."
Meantime, Ben Aboo was quaking with fear. He too, saw the finger
of God in the wondrous thing which had come to pass. And, falling
back on his maudlin mood, he muttered prayers beneath his breath, as
he had done before when the human majesty, the Sultan Abd er-Rahman,
was the object of his terror. "O Giver of good to all! What is this?
Allah save us! Bismillah! Is it Allah or the Jinoon? Merciful!
Compassionate! Curses on them both! Allah! Allah!"
The soldiers were affected by the fears of the Basha, and they
huddled together in a group. But Katrina fell to laughing.
"Brava!" she cried. "Brava! Oh! a brave imposture! What did I
say long ago? Blind? No more blind than you were! But a pretty
pretence! Well acted! Very well acted! Brava! Brava!"
Thus she laughed and mocked, and the Basha, hearing her, took shame
of his crawling fears, and made a poor show of joining her.
Israel heard them, and for a moment, seeing how they made sport of
Naomi, a fire was kindled in his anger that seemed to come up from
the lowest hell. But he fought back the passion that was mastering
him, and at the next instant the laughter had ceased, and Ben Aboo was
saying--
"Guards, take both of them. Set the man on an ass, and let the
girl walk barefoot before him; and let a crier cry beside them, 'So
shall it be done to every man who is an enemy of the Kaid, and to
every woman who is a play-actor and a cheat!' Thus let them pass
through the streets and through the people until they are come to a
gate of the town, and then cast them forth from it like lepers and
like dogs!"
While this bad work had been going forward in the Kasbah a great
blessing had fallen on the town. The long-looked for, hoped for,
prayed for--the good and blessed rain--had come at last. In gentle
drops like dew it had at first been falling from the rack of dark
cloud which had gathered over the heads of the mountains, and now,
after half an hour of such moisture, the sky over the town was grey,
and the rain was pouring down like a flood.
Oh! the joy of it, the sweetness, the freshness, the beauty, the
odour! The air overhead, which had been dense with dust, was clearing
and whitening as if the water washed it. And the ground underfoot,
which had reeked of creeping and crawling things, was running like a
wholesome river, and bearing back to the lips a taste as of the sea.
And the people of the town, in their surprise and gladness at the
falling of the rain, had come out of their houses to meet it. The
streets and the marketplace were full of them. In childish joy they
wandered up and down in the drenching flood, without fear or thought
of harm, with laughing eyes and gleaming white teeth, holding out
their palms to the rain and drinking it. Hailing each other in the
voices of boys, jesting and shouting and singing, to and fro they went
and came without aim or direction. The Jews trooped out of the
Mellah, chattering like jays, and the Moors at the gate salaamed to
them. Mule-drivers cried "Balak" in tones that seemed to sing;
gunsmiths and saddle-makers sat idle at their doors, greeting every
one that passed; solemn Talebs stood in knots, with faces that shone
under the closed hoods of their dark jellabs; and the bareheaded
Berbers encamped in the market-square capered about like flighty
children, grinned like apes, fired their long guns into the air for
love of hearing the powder speak, often wept, and sometimes embraced
each other, thinking of their homes that were far away.
Now, it was just when the town was alive with this strange scene
that the procession which had been ordered by Ben Aboo came out from
the Kasbah. At the head of it walked a soldier, staff in hand and
gorgeous--notwithstanding the rain--in peaked shasheeah and crimson
selham. Behind him were four black police, and on either side of the
company were two criers of the street, each carrying a short staff
festooned with strings of copper coin, which he rattled in the air for
a bell. Between these came the victims of the Basha's order--Naomi
first, barefooted, bareheaded, stripped of all but the last garment
that hid her nakedness, her head held down, her face hidden, and her
eyes closed--and Israel afterwards, mounted on a lean and ragged ass.
A further guard of black police walked at the back of all. Thus they
came down the steep arcades into the market-square, where the greater
body of the townspeople had gathered together.
When the people saw them, they made for them, hastening in crowds
from every side of the Feddan, from every adjacent alley, every shop,
tent, and booth. And when they saw who the prisoners were they burst
into loud exclamations of surprise.
"Ya Allah! Israel the Jew!" cried the Moors.
"God of Jacob, save us! Israel ben Oliel!" cried the people of
the Mellah.
"What is it? What has happened? What has befallen them?" they all
asked together.
"Balak!" cried the soldier in front, swinging his staff before him
to force a passage through the thronging multitude. "Attention! By
your leave! Away! Out of the way!"
And as they walked the criers chanted, "So shall it be done to
every man who is an enemy of the Kaid, and to every woman who is a
play-actor and a cheat."
When the people had recovered from their consternation they began
to look black into each other's face, to mutter oaths between their
teeth, and to say in voices of no pity or rush, "He deserved it!" "Ya
Allah, but he's well served!" "Holy Saints, we knew what it would
come to!" "Look at him now!" "There he is at last!" "Brave end to
all his great doings!" "Curse him! Curse him!"
And over the muttered oaths and pitiless curses, the yelping and
barking of the cruel voices of the crowd, as the procession moved
along, came still the cry of the crier, "So shall it be done to every
man who is an enemy of the Kaid, and to every woman who is a
play-actor and a cheat."
Then the mood of the multitude changed. The people began to
titter, and after that to laugh openly. They wagged their heads at
Israel; they derided him; they made merry over his sorry plight.
Where he was now he seemed to be not so much a fallen tyrant as a
silly sham and an imposture. Look at him! Look at his bony and
ragged ass! Ya Allah! To think that they had ever been afraid of
him!
As the procession crossed the market-place, a woman who was
enveloped in a blanket spat at Israel as he passed. Then it was come
to the door of the Mosque, an old man, a beggar, hobbled through the
crowd and struck Israel with the back of his hand across the face.
The woman had lost her husband and the man his son by death sentences
of Ben Aboo. Israel had succoured both when he went about on his
secret excursions after nightfall in the disguise of a Moor.
"Balak! Balak!" cried the soldier in front, and still the chant
of the crier rang out over all other noises.
At every step the throng increased. The strong and lusty bore
down the weak in the struggle to get near to the procession. Blind
beggars and feeble cripples who could not see or stir shouted hideous
oaths at Israel from the back of the crowd.
As the procession went past the gates of the Mellah, two companies
came out into the town. The one was a company of soldiers returning
to the Kasbah after sacking and wrecking Israel's house; the other
was a company of old Jews, among whom were Reuben Maliki, Abraham
Pigman, and Judah ben Lolo. At the advent of the three usurers a new
impulse seized the people. They pretended to take the procession for
a triumphal progress--the departure of a Kaid, a Shereef, a Sultan.
The soldier and police fell into the humour of the multitude. Salaams
were made to Israel; selhams were flung on the ground before the feet
of Naomi. Reuben Maliki pushed through the crowd, and walked
backward, and cried, in his harsh, nasal croak--
"Brothers of Tetuan, behold your benefactor! Make way for him!
Make way! make way!"
Then there were loud guffaws, and oaths, and cries like the cry of
the hyena. Last of all, old Abraham Pigman handed over the people's
heads a huge green Spanish umbrella to a negro farrier that walked
within; and the black fellow, showing his white teeth in a wide grim,
held it over Israel's head.
Then from fifty rasping throats came mocking cries.
"God bless our Lord!"
"Saviour of his people!"
"Benefactor! King of men!"
And over and between these cries came shrieks and yells of
laughter.
All this time Israel had sat motionless on his ass, neither showing
humiliation nor fear. His face was worn and ashy, but his eyes burned
with a piteous fire. He looked up and saw everything; saw himself
mocked by the soldier and the crier, insulted by the Muslimeen,
derided by the Jews, spat upon and smitten by the people whose hungry
mouths he had fed with bread. Above all, he saw Naomi going before
him in her shame, and at that sight his heart bled and his spirit
burred. And, thinking that it was he who had brought her to this
ignominy, he sometimes yearned to reach her side and whisper in her
ear, and say, "Forgive me, my child, forgive me." But again he
conquered the desire, for he remembered what God had that day done for
her; and taking it for a sign of God's pleasure, and a warranty that
he had done well, he raised his eyes on her with tears of bitter joy,
and thought, in the wild fever of his soul, "She is sharing the
triumph of my humiliation. She is walking through the mocking and
jeering crowd, but see! God Himself is walking beside her!"
The procession had now come to the walled lane to the Bab Toot,
the gate going out to Tangier and to Shawan. There the way was so
narrow and the concourse so great that for a moment the procession was
brought to a stand. Seizing this opportunity, Reuben Maliki stepped
up to Israel and said, so that all might hear, "Look at the crowds
that have come out to speed you, O saviour of your people! Look!
look! We shall all remember this day!"
"So you shall!" cried Israel. "Until your days of death you shall
all remember it!"
He had not spoken before, and some of the Moors tried to laugh at
his answer; but his voice, which was like a frenzied cry, went to the
hearts of the Jews, and many of them fell away from the crowd
straightway, and followed it no farther. It was the cry of the voice
of a brother. They had been insulting calamity itself.
"Balak!" shouted the soldier, and the crier cried once more, and
the procession moved again.
It was the hour of Israel's last temptation. Not a glance in his
face disclosed passion, but his heart was afire. The devil seemed to
be jarring at his ear, "Look! Listen! Is it for people like these
that you have come to this? Were they worth the sacrifice? You might
have been rich and great, and riding on their heads. They would have
honoured you then, but now they despise you. Fool! You have sold all
and given to the poor, and this is the end of it." But in the throes
and last gasp of his agony, hearing his voice in his ear, and seeing
Naomi going barefooted on the stones before him, an angel seemed to
come to him and whisper, "Be strong. Only a little longer. Finish as
you have begun. Well done, servant of God, well done!"
He did not flinch, but rode on without a word or a cry. Once he
lifted his head and looked down at the steaming, gaping, grinning
cauldron of faces black and white. "O pity of men!" he thought.
"What devil is tempting _them_?"
By this time the procession had come to the town walls at a point
near to the Bab Toot. No one had observed until then that the rain
was no longer falling, but now everybody was made aware of this at
once by sight of a rainbow which spanned the sky to the north-west
immediately over the arch of the gate.
Israel saw the rainbow, and took it for a sign. It was God's hand
in the heavens. To this gate then, and through it, out of Tetuan,
into the land beyond--the plains, the hills, the desert where no man
was wronged--God Himself, and not these people, had that day been
leading them!
What happened next Israel never rightly knew. His proper sense of
life seemed lost. Through thick waves of hot air he heard many voices.
First the voice of the crier, "So shall it be done to every man
who is an enemy of the Kaid, and to every woman who is a play-actor
and a cheat."
Then the voice of the soldier, "Balak! Balak!"
After that a multitudinous din that seemed to break off sharply
and then to come muffled and dense as from the other side of the
closed gate.
When Israel came to himself again he was walking on a barren heath
that was dotted over with clumps of the long aloe, and he was holding
Naomi by the hand.
Two days after they had been cast out of Tetuan, Israel and Naomi
were settled in a little house that stood a day's walk to the north
of the town, about midway between the village of Semsa and the fondak
which lies on the road to Tangier. From the hour wherein the gates
had closed behind them, everything had gone well with both. The
country people who lay encamped on the heath outside had gathered
around and shown them kindness. One old Arab woman, seeing Naomi's
shame, had come behind without a word and cast a blanket over her head
and shoulders. Then a girl of the Berber folk had brought slippers
and drawn them on to Naomi's feet. The woman wore no blanket herself,
and the feet of the girl were bare. Their own people were haggard
and hollow-eyed and hungry, but the hearts of all were melted towards
the great man in his dark hour. "Allah had written it," they
muttered, but they were more merciful than they thought their God.
Thus, amid silent pity and audible peace-blessings, with cheer of
kind words and comfort of food and drink, Israel and Naomi had wandered
on through the country from village to village, until in the evening,
an hour after sundown, they came upon the hut wherein they made their
home. It was a poor, mean place--neither a round tent, such as the
mountain Berbers build, nor a square cube of white stone, with its
garden in a court within, such as a Moorish farmer rears for his
homestead, but an oblong shed, roofed with rushes and palmetto leaves
in the manner of an Irish cabin. And, indeed, the cabin of an Irish
renegade it had been, who, escaping at Gibraltar from the ship that
was taking him to Sidney, had sailed in a Genoese trader to Ceuta, and
made his way across the land until he came to this lonesome spot near
to Semsa. Unlike the better part of his countrymen, he had been a man
of solitary habit and gloomy temper, and while he lived he had been
shunned by his neighbours, and when he died his house had been left
alone. That was the chance whereby Israel and Naomi had come to
possess it, being both poor and unclaimed.
Nevertheless, though bare enough of most things that man makes and
values, yet the little place was rich in some of the wealth that comes
only from the hand of God. Thus marjoram and jasmine and pinks and
roses grew at the foot of its walls, and it was these sweet flowers
which had first caught the eyes of Israel. For suddenly through the
mazes of his mind, where every perception was indistinct at that time,
there seemed to come back to him a vague and confused recollection of
the abandoned house, as if the thing that his eyes then saw they had
surely seen before. How this should be Israel could not tell, seeing
that never before to his knowledge had he passed on his way to Tangier
so near to Semsa. But when he questioned himself again, it came to
him, like light beaming into a dark room, that not in any waking hour
at all had he seen the little place before, but in a dream of the
night when he slept on the ground in the poor fondak of the Jews at
Wazzan.
This, then, was the cottage where he had dreamed that he lived with
Naomi; this was where she had seemed to have eyes to see and ears to
hear and a tongue to speak; this was the vision of his dead wife,
which when he awoke on his journey had appeared to be vainly reflected
in his dream; and now it was realised, it was true, it had come to
pass. Israel's heart was full, and being at that time ready to see the
leading of Heaven in everything, he saw it in this fact also; and
thus, without more ado than such inquiries as were necessary, he
settled himself with Naomi in the place they had chanced upon.
And there, through some months following, from the height of the
summer until the falling of winter, they lived together in peace and
content, lacking much, yet wanting nothing; short of many things that
are thought to make men's condition happy, but grateful and thanking
God.
Israel was poor, but not penniless. Out of the wreck of his
fortune, after he sold the best contents of his house, he had still
some three hundred dollars remaining in the pocket of his waistband
when he was cast out of the town. These he laid out in sheep and
goats and oxen. He hired land also of a tenant of the Basha, and sent
wool and milk by the hand of a neighbour to the market at Tetuan. The
rains continued, the eggs of the locust were destroyed, the grass came
green out of the ground, and Israel found bread for both of them.
With such simple husbandry, and in such a home, giving no thought to
the morrow, he passed with cheer and comfort from day to day.
And truly, if at any weaker moment he had been minded to repine
for the loss of his former poor greatness, or to fail of heart in
pursuit of his new calling, for which heavier hands were better fit,
he had always present with him two bulwarks of his purpose and
sheet-anchors of his hope. He was reminded of the one as often as in
the daytime he climbed the hillside above his little dwelling and saw
the white town lying far away under its gauzy canopy of mist, and
whenever in the night the town lamps sent their pale sheet of light
into the dark sky.
"They are yonder," he would think, "wrangling, contending,
fighting, praying, cursing, blessing, and cheating; and I am here, cut
off from them by ten deep miles of darkness, in the quiet, the
silence, and sweet odour of God's proper air."
But stronger to sustain him than any memory of the ways of his
former life was the recollection of Naomi. God had given back all her
gifts, and what were poverty and hard toil against so great a
blessing? They were as dust, they were as ashes, they were what power
of the world and riches of gold and silver had been without it. And
higher than the joy of Israel's constant remembrance that Naomi had
been blind and could now see, and deaf and could now hear, and dumb
and could now speak, was the solemn thought that all this was but the
sign and symbol of God's pleasure and assurance to his soul that the
lot of the scapegoat had been lifted away.
More satisfying still to the hunger of his heart as a man was his
delicious pleasure in Naomi's new-found life. She was like a creature
born afresh, a radiant and joyful being newly awakened into a world of
strange sights.
But it was not at once that she fell upon this pleasure. What had
happened to her was, after all, a simple thing. Born with cataract on
the pupils of her eyes, the emotion of the moment at the Kasbah, when
her father's life seemed to be once more in danger, had--like a fall
or a blow--luxated the lens and left the pupils clear. That was all.
Throughout the day whereon the last of her great gifts came to her,
when they were cast out of Tetuan, and while they walked hand in hand
through the country until they lit upon their home, she had kept her
eyes steadfastly closed. The light terrified her. It penetrated her
delicate lids, and gave her pain. When for a moment she lifted her
lashes and saw the trees, she put out her hand as if to push them
away; and when she saw the sky, she raised her arms as if to hold it
off. Everything seemed to touch her eyes. The bars of sunlight seemed
to smite them. Not until the falling of darkness did her fears
subside and her spirits revive. Throughout the day that followed she
sat constantly in the gloom of the blackest corner of their hut.
But this was only her baptism of light on coming out of a world of
darkness, just as her fear of the voices of the earth and air had been
her baptism of sound on coming out of a land of silence. Within three
days afterwards her terror began to give place to joy; and from that
time forward the world was full of wonder to her opened eyes. Then
sweet and beautiful, beyond all dreams of fancy, were her amazement
and delight in every little thing that lay about her--the grass, the
weeds, the poorest flower that blew, even the rude implements of the
house and the common stones that worked up through the mould--all old
and familiar to her fingers, but new and strange to her eyes, and
marvellous as if an angel out of heaven had dropped them down to her.
For many days after the coming of her sight she continued to
recognise everything by touch and sound. Thus one morning early in
their life in the cottage, and early also in the day, after Israel had
kissed her on the eyelids to awaken her, and she had opened them and
gazed up at him as he stooped above her, she looked puzzled for an
instant, being still in the mists of sleep, and only when she had
closed her eyes again, and put out her hand to touch him, did her face
brighten with recognition and her lips utter his name. "My father,"
she murmured, "my father."
Thus again, the same day, not an hour afterwards, she came running
back to the house from the grass bank in front of it, holding a flower
in her hand, and asking a world of hot questions concerning it in her
broken, lisping, pretty speech. Why had no one told her that there
were flowers that could see? Here was one which while she looked upon
it had opened its beautiful eye and laughed at her. "What is it?" she
asked; "what is it?"
"A daisy, my child," Israel answered.
"A daisy!" she cried in bewilderment; and during the short hush
and quick inspiration that followed she closed her eyes and passed
her nervous fingers rapidly over the little ring of sprinkled spears,
and then said very softly, with head aslant as if ashamed, "Oh, yes,
so it is; it is only a daisy."
But to tell of how those first days of sight sped along for Naomi,
with what delight of ever-fresh surprise, and joy of new wonder,
would be a long task if a beautiful one. They were some miles inside
the coast, but from the little hill-top near at hand they could see it
clearly; and one day when Naomi had gone so far with her father, she
drew up suddenly at his side, and cried in a breathless voice of awe,
"The sky! the sky! Look! It has fallen on to the land."
"That is the sea, my child," said Israel.
"The sea!" she cried, and then she closed her eyes and listened,
and then opened them and blushed and said, while her knitted brows
smoothed out and her beautiful face looked aside, "So it is--yes, it
is the sea."
Throughout that day and the night which followed it the eyes of her
mind were entranced by the marvel of that vision, and next morning she
mounted the hill alone, to look upon it again; and, being so far, she
walked farther and yet farther, wandering on and on, through fields
where lavender grew and chamomile blossomed, on and on, as though
drawn by the enchantment of the mighty deep that lay sparkling in the
sun, until at last she came to the head of a deep gully in the coast.
Still the wonder of the waters held her, but another marvel now seized
upon her sight. The gully was a lonesome place inhabited by
countless sea-birds. From high up in the rocks above, and from far
down in the chasm below, from every cleft on every side, they flew
out, with white wings and black ones and grey and blue, and sent their
voices into the air, until the echoing place seemed to shriek and yell
with a deafening clangour.
It was midday when Naomi reached this spot, and she sat there a
long hour in fear and consternation. And when she returned to her
father, she told him awesome stories of demons that lived in thousands
by the sea, and fought in the air and killed each other. "And see!"
she cried; "look at this, and this, and this!"
Then Israel glanced at the wrecks she had brought with her of the
devilish warfare that she had witnessed and "This," said he, lifting
one of them, "is a sea-bird's feather; and this," lifting another, "is
a sea-bird's egg; and this," lifting the third, "is a dead sea-bird
itself."
Once more Naomi knit her brows in thought, and again she closed her
eyes and touched the familiar things wherein her sight had deceived
her. "Ah yes," she said meekly, looking into her father's eve, with a
smile, "they are only that after all." And then she said very
quietly, as if speaking to herself, "What a long time it is before
you learn to see!"
It was partly due to the isolation of her upbringing in the company
of Israel that nearly every fresh wonder that encountered her eyes
took shapes of supernatural horror or splendour. One early evening,
when she had remained out of the house until the day was well-nigh
done, she came back in a wild ecstasy to tell of angels that she had
just seen in the sky. They were in robes of crimson and scarlet,
their wings blazed like fire, they swept across the clouds in
multitudes, and went down behind the world together, passing out of
the earth through the gates of heaven.
Israel listened to her and said, "That was the sunset my child.
Every morning the sun rises and every night it sets."
Then she looked full into his face and blushed. Her shame at her
sweet errors sometimes conquered her joy in the new heritage of sight,
and Israel heard her whisper to herself and say, "After all, the eyes
are deceitful." Vision was life's new language, and she had yet to
learn it.
But not for long was her delight in the beautiful things of the
world to be damped by any thought of herself. Nay, the best and
rarest part of it, the dearest and most delicious throb it brought
her, came of herself alone. On another early day Israel took her to
the coast, and pushed off with her on the waters in a boat. The air
was still, the sea was smooth, the sun was shining, and save for one
white scarf of cloud the sky was blue. They were sailing in a tiny
bay that was broken by a little island, which lay in the midst like a
ruby in a ring, covered with heather and long stalks of seeding grass.
Through whispering beds of rushes they glided on, and floated over
banks of coral where gleaming fishes were at play. Sea-fowl screamed
over their heads, as if in anger at their invasion, and under their
oars the moss lay in the shallows on the pebbles and great stones. It
was a morning of God's own making, and, for joy of its loveliness no
less than of her own bounding life, Naomi rose in the boat and opened
her lips and arms to the breeze while it played with the rippling
currents of her hair, as if she would drink and embrace it.
At that moment a new and dearer wonder came to her, such as every
maiden knows whom God has made beautiful, yet none remembers the hour
when she knew it first. For, tracing with her eyes the shadow of the
cliff and of the continent of cloud that sailed double in two seas of
blue to where they were broken by the dazzling half-round of the sun's
reflected disc on the shadowed quarter of the boat, she leaned over
the side of it, and then saw the reflection of another and lovelier
vision.
"Father," she cried with alarm, "a face in the water! Look! look!"
"It is your own, my child," said Israel. "Mine!" she cried.
"The reflection of your face," said Israel; "the light and the
water make it."
The marvel was hard to understand. There was something ghostly in
this thing that was herself and yet not herself, this face that looked
up at her and laughed and yet made no voice. She leaned back in the
boat and asked Israel if it was still in the water. But when at length
she had grasped the mystery, the artlessness of her joy was charming.
She was like a child in her delight, and like a woman that was still
a child in her unconscious love of her own loveliness. Whenever the
boat was at rest she leaned over its bulwark and gazed down into the
blue depths.
"How beautiful!" she cried, "how beautiful!"
She clapped her hands and looked again, and there in the still
water was the wonder of her dancing eyes. "Oh! how very beautiful!"
she cried without lifting her face, and when she saw her lips move as
she spoke and her sunny hair fall about her restless head she laughed
and laughed again with a heart of glee.
Israel looked on for some moments at this sweet picture, and, for
all his sense of the dangers of Naomi's artless joy in her own beauty,
he could not find it in his heart to check her. He had borne too long
the pain and shame of one who was father of an afflicted child to
deny himself this choking rapture of her recovery. "Live on like a
child always, little one," he thought; "be a child as long as you can,
be a child for ever, my dove, my darling! Never did the world suffer
it that I myself should be a child at all."
The artlessness of Naomi increased day by day, and found constantly
some new fashion of charming strangeness. All lovely things on the
earth seemed to speak to her, and she could talk with the birds and
the flowers. Also she would lie down in the grass and rest like a
lamb, with as little shame and with a grace as sweet. Not yet had the
great mystery dawned that drops on a girl like an unseen mantle out of
the sky, and when it has covered her she is a child no more. Naomi
was a child still. Nay, she was a child a second time, for while she
had been blind she had seemed for a little while to become a woman in
the awful revelation of her infirmity and isolation. Now she was a
weak, patient, blind maiden no longer, but a reckless spirit of joy
once again, a restless gleam of human sunlight gathering sunshine into
her father's house.
It was fit and beautiful that she who had lived so long without
the better part of the gifts of God should enjoy some of them at
length in rare perfection. Her sight was strong and her hearing was
keen, but voice was the gift which she had in abundance. So sweet, so
full, so deep, so soft a voice as Naomi's came to be, Israel thought
he had never heard before. Ruth's voice? Yes, but fraught with
inspiration, replete with sparkling life, and passionate with the
notes of a joyous heart. All day long Naomi used it. She sang as she
rose in the morning, and was still singing when she lay down at night.
Wherever people came upon her, they came first upon the sound of her
voice. The farmers heard it across the fields, and sometimes Israel
heard it from over the hill by their hut. Often she seemed to them
like a bird that is hidden in a tree, and only known to be there by
the outbursts of its song.
Fatimah's ditties were still her delight. Some of them fell
strangely from her pure lips, so nearly did they border on the
dangerous. But her favourite song was still her mother's:--
Oh, come and claim thine own,
Oh, come and take thy throne,
Reign ever and alone
Reign glorious, golden Love.
Into these words, as her voice ripened, she seemed to pour a
deeper fervour. She was as innocent as a child of their meaning, but
it was almost as if she were fulfilling in some way a law of her
nature as a maid and drifting blindly towards the dawn of Love. Never
did she think of Love, but it was just as if Love were always thinking
of her; it was even as if the spirit of Love were hovering over her
constantly, and she were walking in the way of its outstretched wings.
Israel saw this, and it set him to chasing day-dreams that were
like the drawing up of a curtain. A beautiful phantom of Naomi's
future would rise up before him. Love had come to her. The great
mystery! the rapture, the blissful wonder, the dear, secret, delicious
palpitating joy. He knew it must come some day--perhaps to day,
perhaps to-morrow. And when it came it would be like a sixth sense.
In quieter moments--generally at night, when he would take a candle
and look at her where she lay asleep--Israel would carry his dreams
into Naomi's future one stage farther, and see her in the first dawn
of young motherhood. Her delicate face of pink an cream; her glance
of pride and joy and yearning, an then the thrill of the little
spreading red fingers fastening on her white bosom--oh, what a glimpse
was there revealed to him!
But struggle as he would to find pleasure in these phantoms, he
could not help but feel pain from them also. They had a perilous
fascination for him, but he grudged them to Naomi. He thought he
could have given his immortal soul to her, but these shadows he could
not give. That was his poor tribute to human selfishness; his last
tender, jealous frailty as a father. He dreaded the coming of that
time when another--some other yet unseen--should come before him, and
he should lose the daughter that was now his own.
Sometimes the memory of their old troubles in Tetuan seemed to
cross like a thundercloud the azure of Naomi's sky, but at the next
hour it was gone. The world was too full of marvels for any enduring
sense but wonder. Once she awoke from sleep in terror, and told
Israel of something which she believed to have happened to her in the
night. She had been carried away from him--she could not say when--and
she knew no more until she found herself in a great patio, paved and
wailed with tiles. Men were standing together there in red peaked
caps and flowing white kaftans. And before them all was one old man
in garments that were of the colour of the afternoon sun, with sleeves
like the mouths of bells, a curling silver knife at his waistband,
and little leather bags hung by yellow cords about his neck. Beside
this man there was a woman of a laughing cruel face; and she herself,
Naomi--alone her father being nowhere near--stood in the midst with
all eyes upon her. What happened next she did not know, for blank
darkness fell upon everything, and in that interval they who had taken
her away must have brought her back. For when she opened her eyes she
was in her own bed, and the things of their little home were about
her, and her father's eyes were looking down at her, and his lips were
kissing her, and the sun was shining outside, and the birds were
singing, and the long grass was whispering in the breeze, and it was
the same as if she had been asleep during the night and was just
awakening in the morning.
"It was a dream, my child," said Israel, thinking only with how
vivid a sense her eyes had gathered up in that instant of first sight
the picture of that day at the Kasbah.
"A dream!" she cried; "no, no! I _saw_ it!"
Hitherto her dreams had been blind ones, and if she dreamt of her
own people it had not been of their faces, but of the touch of their
hands or the sound of their voices. By one of these she had always
known them, and sometimes it had been her mother's arms that had been
about her, and sometimes her father's lips that had pressed her
forehead, and sometimes Ali's voice that had rung in her ears.
Israel smoothed her hair and calmed her fears, but thinking both
of her dream and of her artless sayings, he said in his heart, "She
is a child, a child born into life as a maid, and without the strength
of a child's weakness. Oh! great is the wisdom which orders it so
that we come into the world as babes."
Thus realising Naomi's childishness, Israel kept close guard and
watch upon her afterwards. But if she was a gleam of sunlight in his
lonely dwelling, like sunlight she came and went in it, and one day he
found her near to the track leading up to the fondak in talk with a
passing traveller by the way, whom he recognised for the grossest
profligate out of Tetuan. Unveiled, unabashed, with sweet looks of
confidence she was gazing full into the man's gross face, answering
his evil questions with the artless simplicity of innocence. At one
bound Israel was between them; and in a moment he had torn Naomi away.
And that night, while she wept out her very heart at the first anger
that her father had shown her, Israel himself, in a new terror of his
soul, was pouring out a new petition to God. "O Lord, my God," he
cried, "when she was blind and dumb and deaf she was a thing apart,
she was a child in no peril from herself for Thy hand did guide her,
and in none from the world, for no man dared outrage her infirmity.
But now she is a maid, and her dangers are many, for she is
beautiful, and the heart of man is evil. Keep me with her always, O
Lord, to guard and guide her! Let me not leave her, for she is without
knowledge of good and evil. Spare me a little while longer, though I
am stricken in years. For her sake spare me, Oh Lord--it is the last
of my prayers--the last, O Lord, the last--for her sake spare me!"
God did not hear the prayer of Israel. Next morning a guard of
soldiers came out from Tetuan and took him prisoner in the name of the
Kaid. The release of the poor followers of Absalam out of the prison
at Shawan had become known by the blind gratitude of one of them,
who, hastening to Israel's house in the Mellah, had flung himself down
on his face before it.
Short as the time was--some three months and odd days--since the
prison at Shawan had been emptied by order of the warrant which Israel
had sealed without authority in the name of Ben Aboo, it was now
occupied by other prisoners. The remoteness of the town in the
territory of the Akhmas, and the wild fanaticism of the Shawanis, had
made the old fortress a favourite place of banishment to such Kaids of
other provinces as looked for heavier ransoms from the relatives of
victims, because the locality of their imprisonment was unknown or the
danger of approaching it was terrible. And thus it happened that some
fifty or more men and boys from near and far were already living in
the dungeon from which Israel and Ali together had set the other
prisoners free.
This was the prison to which Israel was taken when he was torn from
Naomi and the simple home that he had made for himself near Semsa.
"Ya Allah! Let the dog eat the crust which he thought too hard for
his pups!" said Ben Aboo, as he sealed the warrant which consigned
Israel to the Kaid of Shawan.
Israel was taken to the prison afoot, and reached it on the morning
of the second day after his arrest. The sun was shining as he
approached the rude old block of masonry and entered the passage that
led down to the dungeon. In a little court at the door of the place
the Kaid el habs, the jailer, was sitting on a mattress, which served
him for chair by day and bed by night. He was amusing himself with a
ginbri, playing loud and low according as the tumult was great or
little which came from the other side of a barred and knotted doorway
behind him, some four feet high, and having a round peephole in the
upper part of it. On the wall above hung leather thongs, and a long
Reefian flintlock stood in the corner.
At Israel's approach there were some facetious comments between the
jailer and the guard. Why the ginbri? Was he practising for the
fires of Jehinnum? Was he to fiddle for the Jinoon? Well, what was a
man to do while the dogs inside were snarling? Were the thongs for
the correction of persons lacking understanding? Why, yes; everybody
knew their old saying, "A hint to the wise, a blow to the fool."
A bunch of great keys rattled, the low doorway was thrown open,
Israel stooped and went in, the door closed behind him, the footsteps
of the guard died away, and the twang of the ginbri began again.
The prison was dark and noisome, some sixty feet long by half as
many broad, supported by arches resting on rotten pillars, lighted
only by narrow clefts at either hand, exuding damp from its walls,
dropping moisture from its roof, its air full of vermin, and its floor
reeking of filth. And only less horrible than the prison itself was
the condition of the prisoners. Nearly all wore iron fetters on their
legs, and some were shackled to the pillars. At one side a little
group of them--they were Shereefs from Wazzan-- were conversing
eagerly and gesticulating wildly; and at the other side a larger
company--they were Jews from Fez--were languidly twisting palmetto
leaves into the shape of baskets. Four Berbers at the farther end
were playing cards, and two Arabs that were chained to a column near
the door squatted on the ground with a battered old draughtboard
between them. From both groups of players came loud shouts and
laughter and a running fire of expostulation and of indignant and
sarcastic comment. Down went the cards with triumphant bangs, and the
moves of the "dogs" were like lightning. First a mocking voice: "_You_
call yourself a player! There!--there!--there!" Then a meek, piping
tone: "So--so--verily, you are my master. Well, let us praise Allah
for your wisdom." But soon a wild burst of irony: "You are like him
who killed the dog and fell into the river. See! thus I teach you to
boast over your betters! I shave your beard! There!--there!--and
there!"
In the middle of the reeking floor, so placed that the thin shaft
of light from the clefts at the ends might fall on them--a
barber-doctor was bleeding a youth from a vein in the arm. "We're all
having it done," he was saying. "It's good for the internals. I did
it to a shipload of pilgrims once." A wild-looking creature sat in a
corner--he was a saint, a madman, of the sect of the Darkaoa--rocking
himself to and fro, and crying "Allah! All-lah! All-l-lah!
All-l-l-lah!" Near to this person a haggard old man of the Grega sect
was shaking and dancing at his prayers. And not far from either a
Mukaddam, a high-priest of the Aissa, brotherhood--a juggler who had
travelled through the country with a lion by a halter--was singing a
frantic mockery of a Christian hymn to a tune that he had heard on the
coast.
Such was the scene of Israel's imprisonment, and such were the
companions that were to share it. There had been a moment's pause in
the clamour of their babel as the door opened and Israel entered. The
prisoners knew him, and they were aghast. Every eye looked up and
every mouth was agape. Israel stood for a time with the closed door
behind him. He looked around, made a step forward, hesitated, seemed
to peer vainly through the darkness for bed or mattress, and then sat
down helplessly by a pillar on the ground.
A young negro in a coarse jellab went up to him and offered a bit
of bread. "Hungry, brother? No?" said the youth. "Cheer up, Sidi!
No good letting the donkey ride on your head!"
This person was the Irishman of the company--a happy, reckless,
facetious dog, who had lost little save his liberty and cared nothing
for his life, but laughed and cheated and joked and made doggerel
songs on every disaster that befell them. He made one song on
himself--
El Arby was a black man
They called him "'Larby Kosk:"
He loved the wives of the Kasbah,
And stole slippers in the Mosque.
Israel was stunned. Since his arrest he had scarcely spoken.
"Stay here," he had said to Naomi when the first outburst of her
grief was quelled; "never leave this place. Whatever they say, stay
here. I will come back." After that he had been like a man who was
dumb. Neither insult nor tyranny had availed to force a word or a cry
out of him. He had walked on in silence doggedly, hardly once
glancing up into the faces of his guard, and never breaking his fast
save with a draught of water by the way.
At Shawan, as elsewhere in Barbary, the prisoners were supported
by their own relatives and friends, and on the day after Israel's
arrival a number of women and children came to the prison with
provisions. It was a wild and gruesome scene that followed. First,
the frantic search of the prisoners for their wives and sons and
daughters, and their wild shouts as each one found his own. "Blessed
be God! She's here! here!" Then the maddening cries of the prisoners
whose relatives had not come. "My Ayesha! Where is she? Curses on
her mother! Why isn't she here?" After that the shrieks of despair
from such as learned that their breadwinners were dying off one by
one. "Dead, you say?" "Dead!" "No, no!" "Yes, yes!" "No, no, I
say!" "I say yes! God forgive me! died last week. But don't you die
too. Here take this bag of zummetta." Then inquiries after absent
children. "Little Selam, where is he?" "Begging in Tetuan." "Poor
boy! poor boy! And pretty M'barka, what of her?" "Alas! M'barka's a
public woman now in Hoolia's house at Marrakesh. No, don't curse her,
Jellali; the poor child was driven to it. What were we to do with the
children crying for bread? And then there was nothing to fetch you
this journey, Jellali." "I'll not eat it now it's brought. My boy a
beggar and my girl a harlot? By Allah! May the Kaid that keeps me
here roast alive in the fires of hell!" Then, apart in one quiet
corner, a young Moor of Tangier eating rice out of the lap of his
beautiful young wife. "You'll not be long coming again, dearest?" he
whispers. She wipes her eyes and stammers, "No--that is--well--"
"What's amiss?" "Ali, I must tell you--" "Well?" "Old Aaron
Zaggoory says I must marry him, or he'll see that both of us starve."
"Allah! And you--_you_?" "Don't look at me like that, Ali; the
hunger is on me, and whatever happens I--I can love nobody else."
"Curses on Aaron Zaggoory! Curses on you! Curses on everybody!"
No one had come with food for Israel, and seeing this 'Larby the
negro swaggered up to him, singing a snatch and offering a round cake
of bread--
Rusks are good and kiks are sweet
And kesksoo is both meat and drink;
It's this for now, and that for then,
But khalia still for married men.
"You're like me, Sidi," he said, "you want nothing," and he made
an upward movement of his forefinger to indicate his trust in
Providence. That was the gay rascal's way of saying that he stole from
the bags of his comrades while they slept.
"No? Fasting yet?" he said, and went off singing as he came--
It will make your ladies love you;
It will make them coo and kiss--
"What?" he shouted to some one across the prison "eating khalia in
the bird-cage? Bad, bad, bad!"
All this came to Israel's mind through thick waves of
half-consciousness, but with his heart he heard nothing, or the very
air of the place must have poisoned him. He sat by the pillar at
which he had first placed himself, and hardly ever rose from it. With
great slow eyes he gazed at everything, but nothing did he see.
Sometimes he had the look of one who listens, but never did he hear.
Thus in silence and languor he passed from day to day, and from night
to night, scarcely sleeping, rarely eating, and seeming always to be
waiting, waiting, waiting.
Fresh prisoners came at short intervals, and then only was
Israel's interest awakened. One question he asked of all. "Where
from?" If they answered from Fez, from Wazzan, from Mequinez, or from
Marrakesh, Israel turned aside and left them without more words. Then
to his fellows they might pour out their woes in loud wails and
curses, but Israel would hear no more.
Strangers from Europe travelling through the country were allowed
to look into the prison through the round peephole of the door kept
by the Kaid el habs, who played the ginbri. The Jews who made baskets
took this opportunity to offer their work for sale; and so that he
might see the visitors and speak with them Israel would snatch up
something and hang it out. Always his question was the same. "Where
from last?" he would say in English, or Spanish, or French, or
Moorish. Sometimes it chanced that the strangers knew him. But he
showed no shame. Never did their answers satisfy him. He would turn
back to his pillar with a sigh.
Thus weeks went on, and Israel's face grew worn and tired. His
fellow prisoners began to show him deference in their own rude way.
When he came among them at the first they had grinned and laughed a
little. To do that was always the impulse of the poor souls, so
miserably imprisoned, when a new comrade joined him. But the majesty
and the suffering in Israel's face told on their hearts at last. He
was a great man fallen, he had nothing left to him; not even bread to
eat or water to drink. So they gathered about him and hit on a way to
make him share their food. Bringing their sacks to his pillar, they
stacked them about it, and asked him to serve out provisions to all,
day by day, share and share alike. He was honest, he was a master, no
one would steal from him, it was best, the stuff would last longest.
It was a touching sight.
Still the old eagerness betrayed itself in Israel's weary manner
as often as the door opened and fresh prisoners arrived. Once it
happened that before he uttered his usual question he saw that the
newcomers were from Tetuan, and then his restlessness was feverish.
"When--were you--have you been of late--" he stammered, and seemed
unable to go farther.
But the Tetawanis knew and understood him. "No," said one in
answer to the unspoken question; "Nor I," said another; "Nor I," said
a third, "Nor I neither," said a fourth, as Israel's rapid eyes passed
down the line of them.
He turned away without a word more, sat down by the pillar and
looked vacantly before him while the new prisoners told their story.
Ben Aboo was a villain. The people of Tetuan had found him out. His
wife was a harlot whose heart was a deep pit. Between them they were
demoralising the entire bashalic. The town was worse than Sodom.
Hardly a child in the streets was safe, and no woman, whether wife or
daughter, whom God had made comely, dare show herself on the roofs.
Their own women had been carried off to the palace at the Kasbah.
That was why they themselves were there in prison.
This was about a month after the coming of Israel to Shawan. Then
his reason began to unsettle. It was pitiful to see that he was
conscious of the change that was befalling him. He wrestled with
madness with all the strength of a strong man. If it should fall upon
him, where then would be his hope and outlook? His day would be done,
his night would be closed in, he would be no more than a helpless log,
rolling in an ice-bound sea, and when the thaw came--if it ever
came--he would be only a broken, rudderless, sailless wreck.
Sometimes he would swear at nothing and fling out his arms wildly,
and then with a look of shame hang down his head and mutter, "No, no,
Israel; no, no, no!"
Other prisoners arrived from Tetuan, and all told the same story.
Israel listened to them with a stupid look, seeming hardly to hear
the tale they told him. But one morning, as life began again for the
day in that slimy eddy of life's ocean, every one became aware that an
awful change had come to pass. Israel's face had been worn and tired
before, but now it looked very old and faded. His black hair had been
sprinkled with grey, and now it was white; and white also was his dark
beard, which had grown long and ragged. But his eye glistened, and his
teeth were aglitter in his open mouth. He was laughing at everything,
yet not wildly, not recklessly, not without meaning or intention, but
with the cheer of a happy and contented man.
Israel was mad, and his madness was a moving thing to look upon.
He thought he was back at home and a rich man still, as he had been
in earlier days, but a generous man also, as he was in later ones.
With liberal hand he was dispensing his charities.
"Take what you need; eat, drink, do not stint; there is more where
this has come from; it is not mine; God has lent it me for the good of
all."
With such words, graciously spoken, he served out the provisions
according to his habit, and only departed from his daily custom in
piling the measures higher, and in saluting the people by titles--Sid,
Sidi, Mulai, and the like--in degree as their clothes were poor and
ragged. It was a mad heart that spoke so, but also it was a big one.
From that time forward he looked upon the prisoners as his guests,
and when fresh prisoners came to the prison he always welcomed them
as if he were host there and they were friends who visited him.
"Welcome!" he would say; "you are very welcome. The place is your
own. Take all. What you don't see, believe we have not got it. A
thousand thousand welcomes home!" It was grim and painful irony.
Israel's comrades began to lose sense of their own suffering in
observing the depth of his, and they laid their heads together to
discover the cause of his madness. The most part of them concluded
that he was repining for the loss of his former state. And when one
day another prisoner came from Tetuan with further tales of the
Basha's tyranny, and of the people's shame at thought of how they had
dealt by Israel, the prisoners led the man back to where Israel was
standing in the accustomed act of dispensing bounty, that he might
tell his story into the rightful ears.
"They're always crying for you," said the Tetawani; "'Israel ben
Oliel! Israel ben Oliel!' that's what you hear in the mosques and the
streets everywhere.' Shame on us for casting him out, shame on us!
He was our father!' Jews and Muslimeen, they're all saying so."
It was useless. The glad tidings could not find their way. That
black page of Israel's life which told of the people's ingratitude was
sealed in the book of memory. Israel laughed. What could his good
friend mean? Behold! was he not rich? Had he not troops of comrades
and guests about him?
The prisoners turned aside, baffled and done. At length one
man--it was no other than 'Larby the wastrel--drew some of them apart
and said, "You are all wrong. It's not his former state that he's
thinking of. _I_ know what it is--who knows so well as I? Listen! you
hear his laughter! Well, he must weep, or he will be mad for ever.
He must be _made_ to weep. Yes, by Allah! and I must do it."
That same night, when darkness fell over the dark place, and the
prisoners tied up their cotton headkerchiefs and lay down to sleep,
'Larby sat beside Israel's place with sighs and moans and other
symptoms of a dejected air.
"Sidi, master," he faltered, "I had a little brother once, and he
was blind. Born blind, Sidi, my own mother's son. But you wouldn't
think how happy he was for all that? You see, Sidi he never missed
anything, and so his little face was like laughing water! By Allah!
I loved that boy better than all the world! Women? Why--well, never
mind! He was six and I was eighteen, and he used to ride on my back!
Black curls all over, Sidi, and big white eyes that looked at you for
all they couldn't see. Well a bleeder came from Soos--curse his
great-grandfather! Looked at little Hosain--'Scales!' said he--burn
his father! Bleed him and he'll see! So they bled him, and he did
see. By Allah! yes, for a minute--half a minute! 'Oh, 'Larby,' he
cried--I was holding him; then he--he--' 'Larby,' he cried faint, like
a lamb that's lost in the mountains--and then--and then--'Oh, oh,
'Larby,' he moaned Sidi, Sidi, I _paid_ that bleeder--there and
then--_this_ way! That's why I'm here!"
It was a lie, but 'Larby acted it so well that his voice broke in
his throat, and great drops fell from his eyes on to Israel's hand.
The effect on Israel himself was strange and even startling. While
'Larby was speaking, he was beating his forehead and mumbling: "Where?
When? Naomi!" as if grappling for lost treasures in an ebbing sea.
And when 'Larby finished, he fell on him with reproaches. "And you
are weeping for that?" he cried. "You think it much that the sweet
child is dead--God rest him! So it is to the like of you, but look at
me!"
His voice betrayed a grim pride in his miseries. "Look at me! Am
I weeping? No; I would scorn to weep. But I have more cause a
thousandfold. Listen! Once I was rich; but what were riches without
children? Hard bread with no water for sop. I asked God for a child.
He gave me a daughter; but she was born blind and dumb and deaf. I
asked God to take my riches and give her hearing. He gave her hearing;
but what was hearing without speech? I asked God to take all I had and
give her speech. He gave her speech, but what was speech without
sight? I asked God to take my place from me and give her sight. He
gave her sight, and I was cast out of the town like a beggar. What
matter? She had all, and I was forgiven. But when I was happy, when
I was content, when she filled my heart with sunshine, God snatched me
away from her. And where is she now? Yonder, alone, friendless, a
child new-born into the world at the mercy of liars and libertines.
And where am I? Here, like a beast in a trap, uttering abortive
groans, toothless, stupid, powerless, mad. No, no, not mad, either!
Tell me, boy, I am not mad!"
In the breaking waters of his madness he was struggling like a
drowning man. "Yet I do not weep," he cried in a thick voice. "God
has a right to do as He will. He gave her to me for seventeen years.
If she dies she'll be mine again soon. Only if she lives--only if
she falls into evil hands--Tell me, _have_ I been mad?"
He gave no time for an answer. "Naomi!" he cried, and the name
broke in his throat. "Where are you now? What has--who have--your
father is thinking of you--he is--No, I will not weep. You see I have
a good cause, but I tell you I will never weep. God has a right--
Naomi!--Na--"
The name thickened to a sob as he repeated it, and then suddenly
he rose and cried in an awful voice, "Oh, I'm a fool! God has done
nothing for me. Why should I do anything for God? He has taken all
I had. He has taken my child. I have nothing more to give Him but my
life. Let Him take that too. Take it, I beseech Thee!" he cried--the
vault of the prison rang--" Take it, and set me free!"
But at the next moment he had fallen back to his place, and was
sobbing like a little child. The other prisoners had risen in their
amazement, and 'Larby, who was shedding hot tears over his cold ones,
was capering down the floor, and singing, "El Arby was a black man."
Then there was a rattling of keys, and suddenly a flood of light
shot into the dark place. The Kaid el habs was bringing a courier,
who carried an order for Israel's release. Abd er-Rahman, the Sultan,
was to keep the feast of the Moolood at Tetuan, and Ben Aboo, to
celebrate the visit, had pardoned Israel.
It was coals of fire on Israel's head. "God is good," he muttered.
"I shall see her again. Yes, God has a right to do as He will. I
shall see her soon. God is wise beyond all wisdom. I must lose no
time. Jailer can I leave the town to-night? I wish to start on my
journey. To-night?--yes, to-night! Are the gates open? No? You will
open them? You are very good. Everybody is very good. God is good.
God is mighty."
Then half in shame, and partly as apology for his late intemperate
outburst, with a simpleness that was almost childish, he said, "A
man's a fool when he loses his only child. I don't mean by death.
Time heals that. But the living child--oh, it's an unending pain!
You would never think how happy we were. Her pretty ways were all my
joy. Yes, for her voice was music, and her breath was like the dawn.
Do you know, I was very fond of the little one--I was quite miserable
if I lost sight of her for an hour. And then to be wrenched away ! .
. . . But I must hasten back. The little one will be waiting. Yes,
I know quite well she'll be looking out from the door in the sunshine
when she awakes in the morning. It's always the way of these tender
creatures, is it not? So we must humour them. Yes, yes, that's so
that's so."
His fellow-prisoners stood around him each in his
night-headkerchief knotted under his chin--gaunt, hooded figures, in
the shifting light of the jailer's lantern.
"Farewell, brothers!" he cried; and one by one they touched his
hand and brought it to their breasts.
The light shot out; the door clasped back; there were footsteps
dying away outside; two loud bangs as of a closing gate, and then
silence--empty and ghostly.
In the darkness the hooded figures stood a moment listening, and
then a croaking, breaking, husky, merry voice began to sing--
El Arby was a black man,
They called him "'Larby Kosk;"
He loved the wives of the Kasbah,
And stole slippers in the Mosque.
What had happened to Naomi during the two months and a half while
Israel lay at Shawan is this: After the first agony of their parting,
in which she was driven back by the soldiers when she attempted to
follow them, she sat down in a maze of pain, without any true
perception of the evil which had befallen her, but with her father's
warning voice and his last words in her ear: "Stay here. Never leave
this place. Whatever they say, stay here. I will come back."
When she awoke in the morning, after a short night of broken sleep
and fitful dreams, the voice and the words were with her still, and
then she knew for the first time what the meaning was, and what the
penalty, of this strange and dread asundering. She was alone, and,
being alone, she was helpless; she was no better than a child, without
kindred to look to her and without power to look to herself, with food
and drink beside her, but no skill to make and take them.
Thus her awakening sense was like that of a lamb whose mother has
been swallowed up in the night by the sand-drifts of the simoom. It
was not so much love as loss. What to do, where to look, which way to
turn first, she knew no longer, and could not think, for lack of the
hand that had been wont to guide her.
The neighbouring Moors heard of what had happened to Naomi, and
some of the women among them came to see her. They were poor farming
people, oppressed by cruel taxmasters; and the first things they saw
were the cattle and sheep, and the next thing was the simple girl with
the child-face, who knew nothing yet of the ways wherein a lonely
woman must fend for herself.
"You cannot live here alone, my daughter," they said; "you would
perish. Then think of the danger--a child like you, with a face like a
flower! No, no, you must come to us. We will look to you like one of
our own, and protect you from evil men. And as for the creatures--"
"But he said I was never to leave this place," said Naomi. "'Stay
here,' he said; 'whatever they say, stay here. I will come back.'"
The women protested that she would starve, be stolen, ruined, and
murdered. It was in vain. Naomi's answer was always the same: "He
told me to stay here, and surely I must do so."
Then one after another the poor folks went away in anger. "Tut!"
they thought, "what should we want with the Jew child? Allah! Was
there ever such a simpleton? The good creatures going to waste, too!
And as for her father, he'll never come back--never. Trust the Basha
for that!"
But when the humanity of the true souls had conquered their
selfishness, they came again one by one and vied with each other in
many simple offices--milking and churning, and baking and delving--in
pity of the sweet girl with the great eyes who had been left to live
alone. And Naomi, seeing her helplessness at last, put out all her
powers to remedy it, so that in a little while she was able to do for
herself nearly everything that her neighbours at first did for her.
Then they would say among themselves, "Allah! she's not such a baby
after all; and if she wasn't quite so beautiful, poor child, or if
the world wasn't so wicked--but then, God is great! God is great!"
Not at first had Naomi understood them when they told her that her
father had been cast into prison, and every night when she left her
lamp alight by the little skin-covered window that was half-hidden
under the dropping eaves, and every morning when she opened her door
to the radiance of the sun she had whispered to herself and said, "He
will come back, Naomi; only wait, only wait; maybe it will be tonight,
maybe it will be to-day; you will see, you will see."
But after the awful thought of what prison was had fully dawned
upon her as last, by help of what she saw and heard of other men who
had been there, her old content in her father's command that she
should never leave that place was shaken and broken by a desire to go
to him.
"Who's to feed him, poor soul? He will be famishing. If the Kaid
finds him in bread, it will only be so much more added to his ransom.
That will come to the same thing in the end, or he'll die in prison."
Thus she had heard the gossips talk among themselves when they
thought she did not listen. And though it was little she understood
of Kaids and ransoms, she was quick to see the nature of her father's
peril, and at length she concluded that, in spite of his injunction,
go to him she should and must. With that resolve, her mind, which
had been the mind of a child seemed to spring up instantly and become
the mind of a woman, and her heart, that had been timid, suddenly grew
brave, for pity and love were born in it. "He must be starving in
prison," she thought, "and I will take him food."
When her neighbours heard of her intention they lifted their hands
in consternation and horror. "God be gracious to my father!" they
cried. "Shawan? You? Alone? Child, you'll be lost, lost--worse, a
thousand times worse! Shoof! you're only a baby still."
But their protests availed as little to keep Naomi at her home now
as their importunities had done before to induce her to leave it. "He
must be starving in prison," she said, "and I will take him food."
Her neighbours left her to her stubborn purpose.
"Allah!" they said, "who would have believed it, that the little
pink-and-white face had such a will of her own!"
Without more ado Naomi set herself to prepare for her journey. She
saved up thirty eggs, and baked as many of the round flat cakes of the
country; also she churned some butter in the simple way which the
women had taught her, and put the milk that was left in a goat's-skin.
In three days she was ready, and then she packed her provisions in
the leaf panniers of a mule which one of the neighbours had lent to
her, and got up before them on the front of the burda, after the
manner of the wives whom she had seen going past to market.
When she was about to start her gossips came again, in pity of her
wild errand, to bid her farewell and to see the last of her. "Keep to
the track as far as Tetuan," they said to her, "and then ask for the
road to Shawan." One old creature threw a blanket over her head in
such a way that it might cover her face. "Faces like yours are not
for the daylight," the old body whispered, and then Naomi set forward
on her journey. The women watched her while she mounted the hill that
goes up to the fondak, and then sinks out of sight beyond it. "Poor
mad little fool," they whimpered; "that's the end of her! She'll
never come back. Too many men about for that. And now," they said,
facing each other with looks of suspicion and envy, "what of the
creatures?"
While the good souls were dividing her possessions among them,
Naomi was awakening to some vague sense of her difficulties and
dangers. She had thought it would be easy to ask her way, but now that
she had need to do so she was afraid to speak. The sight of a strange
face alarmed her, and she was terrified when she met a company of
wandering Arabs changing pasture, with the young women and children on
camels, the old women trudging on foot under loads of cans and kettles,
the boys driving the herds, and the men, armed with long flintlocks,
riding their prancing barbs. Her poor little mule came to a stand in
the midst of this cavalcade, and she was too bewildered to urge it on.
Also her fear which had first caused her to cover her face with the
blanket that her neighbour had given her, now made her forget to do
so, and the men as they passed her peered close into her eyes. Such
glances made her blood to tingle. They seared her very soul, and she
began to know the meaning of shame.
Nevertheless, she tried to keep up a brave heart and to push
forward. "He is starving in prison," she told herself; "I must lose no
time." It was a weary journey. Everything was new to her, and nearly
everything was terrible. She was even perplexed to see that however
far she travelled she came upon men and women and children. It was so
strange that all the world was peopled. Yet sometimes she wished
there were more people everywhere. That was when she was crossing a
barren waste with no house in sight and never a sign of human life on
any side. But oftener she wished that the people were not so many;
and that was when the children mocked at her mule, or the women jeered
at her as if she must needs be a base person because she was alone, or
the men laughed and leered into her uncovered face.
Before she had gone many miles her heart began to fail. Everything
was unlike what she expected. She had thought the world so good that
she had but to say to any that asked her of her errand, "My father is
in prison, they say that he is starving; I am taking him food," and
every one would help her forward. Though she had never put it to
herself so, yet she had reckoned in this way in spite of the warnings
of her neighbours. But no one was helping her forward; few were
looking on her with goodwill, and fewer still with pity and cheer.
The jogging of the mule, a most bony and stiff-limbed beast, had
flattened the panniers that hung by its side, and made the round cakes
of bread to protrude from the open mouth of one of them. Seeing this,
a line of market-women going by, with bags of charcoal on their backs,
snatched a cake each as they passed and munched them and laughed.
Naomi tried to protest. "The bread is for my father," she faltered;
"he is in prison; they say he--" But the expostulation that began
thus timidly broke down of itself, for the women laughed again out of
their mouths choked with the bread, and in another moment they were
gone.
Naomi's spirit was crushed, but she tried to keep up a brave front
still. To speak of her father again would be to shame him. The poor
little illusions of the sweetness and goodness of the world which, in
spite of vague recollections of Tetuan, she had struggled, since the
coming of her sight, to build up in her fresh young soul, were now
tumbling to pieces. After all, the world was very cruel. It was the
same as if an angel out of the clouds had fallen on to the earth and
found her feet mired with clay.
Six hours after she had set out from her home Naomi came to a
fondak which stood in those days outside the walls of Tetuan on the
south-western side. The darkness had closed in by this time, and she
must needs rest there for the night, but never until then had she
reflected that for such accommodation she would need money. Only a few
coppers were necessary, only twenty moozoonahs, that she might lie in
the shelter and safety of one of the pens that were built for the
sleep of human creatures, and that her mule might be tethered and fed
on the manure heap that constituted the square space within. At last
she bethought her of her eggs, and, though it went to her heart to use
for herself what was meant for her father, she parted with twelve of
them, and some cakes of the bread besides, that she might be allowed
to pass the gate, telling herself repeatedly, with big throbs of
remorse between her protestations, that unless she did so her father
might never get anything at all.
The fondak was a miserable place, full of farming people who were
to go on to market at Tetuan in the morning, of many animals of
burden, and of countless dogs. It was the eve of the month of Rabya
el-ooal, and between the twilight and the coming of night certain of
the men watched for the new moon, and when its thin bow appeared in
the sky they signalled its advent after their usual manner by firing
their flintlocks into the air, while their women, who were squatting
around, kept up a cooing chorus. Then came eating and drinking, and
laughing and singing, and playing the ginbri, and feats of juggling,
as well as snarling and quarrelling and fighting, and also peacemaking
by means of a cudgel wielded by the keeper of the fondak. With such
exercises the night passed into morning.
Naomi was sick. Her head ached. The smell of rotten fish, the
stench of the manure heap, the braying of the donkeys, the barking of
the dogs, the grunt of the camels, and the tumult of human voices made
her light-headed. She could neither eat nor sleep. Almost as soon as
it was light she was up and out and on her way. "I must lose no
time," she thought, trying not to realise that the blue sky was
spinning round her, that noises were ringing in her head, and that her
poor little heart, which had been so stout only yesterday, was sinking
very low.
"He must be starving," she told herself again, and that helped her
to forget her own troubles and to struggle on. But oh, if the world
were only not so cruel, oh, if there were anyone to give her a word of
cheer, nay, a glance of pity! But nobody had looked at her except the
women who stole her bread and the men who shamed her with their wicked
eyes.
That one day's experience did more than all her life before it to
fill her with the bitter fruit of the tree of the knowledge of good
and evil. Her illusions fell away from her, and her sweet childish
faith was broken down. She saw herself as she was: a simple girl, a
child ignorant of the ways of the world, going alone on a long journey
unknown to her, thinking to succour her father in prison, and carrying
a handful of eggs and a few poor cakes of bread. When at length the
scales fell from the eyes of her mind, and as she trudged along on her
bony mule, afraid to ask her way, she saw herself, with all her fine
purposes shrivelled up, do what she would to be brave, she could not
help but cry. It was all so vain, so foolish; she was such a weak
little thing. Her father knew this, and that was why he told her to
stay where he left her. What if he came home while she was absent!
Should she go back?
She had almost resolved to return, struggle as she might to push
forward, when going close under the town walls, near to the very gate,
the Bab Toot whereat she had been cast out with her father
remembering this scene of their abasement with a new sense of its
cruelty and shame born of her own simple troubles, she lit upon a
woman who was coming out.
It was Habeebah. She was now the slave of Ben Aboo, and was just
then stealing away from the Kasbah in the early morning that she might
go in search of Naomi, whose whereabouts and condition she had lately
learned.
The two might have passed unknown, for Habeebah was veiled, but
that Naomi had forgotten her blanket and was uncovered. In another
moment the poor frightened girl, with all her brave bearing gone, was
weeping on the black woman's breast.
"Whither are you going?" said Habeebah.
"To my father," Naomi began. "He is in prison; they say he is
starving; I was taking food to him, but I am lost, I don't know my
way; and besides--"
"The very thing!" cried Habeebah.
Habeebah had her own little scheme. It was meant to win
emancipation at the hands of her master, and paradise for her soul
when she died. Naomi, who was a Jewess, was to turn Muslima. That was
all. Then her troubles would end, and wondrous fortune would descend
upon her, and her father who was in prison would be set free.
Now, religion was nothing to Naomi; she hardly understood what it
meant. The differences of faith were less than nothing, but her father
was everything, and so she clutched at Habeebah's bold promises like
a drowning soul at the froth of a breaker.
"My father will be let out of prison? You are sure--quite sure?"
she asked.
"Quite sure," answered Habeebah stoutly.
Naomi's hopes of ever reaching her father were now faint, and her
poor little stock of eggs and bread looked like folly to her new-born
worldliness.
"Very well," she said. "I will turn Muslima."
A few minutes afterwards she was riding by Habeebah's side into the
town, through the Bab Toot across the Feddan, and up to the courtyard
of the Kasbah, which had witnessed the beginning of her own and her
father's degradation. Then, tethering the beast in the open stables
there, Habeebah took Naomi into her own little room and left her alone
for some minutes, while she hastened to Ben Aboo in secret with her
wondrous news.
"Lord Basha," she said, "the beautiful Jewess Naomi, the daughter
of Israel ben Oliel, will turn Muslima."
"Where is she?" said Ben Aboo.
"Sidi," said Habeebah, "I have promised that you will liberate her
father."
"Fetch her," said Ben Aboo, "and it shall be done."
But meanwhile Fatimah had gone to Habeebah's room and found Naomi
there, and heard of the vain hope which had brought her.
"My sweet jewel of gold and silver," the black woman cried, "you
don't know what you are doing. Turn Muslima, and you will be parted
from your father for ever. He is a Jew, and will have no right to you
any more. You will never, never see him again. He will be lost to
you--lost--I say--lost!"
Habeebah, with two of the guard, came back to take Naomi to Ben
Aboo. The poor girl was bewildered. She had seen nothing but her
father in Fatimah's protest, just as she had seen nothing but her
father in Habeebah's promises. She did not know what to do, she was
such a poor weak little thing, and there was no strong hand to guide
her.
They led her through dark passages to an open place which she
thought she had seen before. It was a great patio, paved and walled
with tiles. Men were standing together there in red peaked caps and
flowing white kaftans. And before them all was one old man in
garments that were of the colour of the afternoon sun, with sleeves
like the mouths of bells, a silver knife at his waistband, and little
leather bags, hung by yellow cords, about his neck. Beside this man
there was a woman of a laughing cruel face, and she herself, Naomi,
stood in the midst, with every eye upon her. Where had she seen all
this before?
Ben Aboo had often bethought him of the beautiful girl since he
committed her father to prison. He cherished schemes concerning her
which he did not share with his wife Katrina. But he had hitherto
been withheld by two considerations: the first being that he was beset
with difficulties arising out of the demands of the Sultan for more
money than he could find, and the next that he foresaw the necessity
that might perchance arise of recalling Israel to his post. Out of
these grave bedevilments he had extricated himself at length by
imposing dues on certain tribes of Reefians, who had never yet
acknowledged the Sultan's authority, and by calling on the Sultan's
army to enforce them. The Sultan had come in answer to his summons,
the Reefians had been routed, their villages burnt, and that morning
at daybreak he had received a message saying that Abd er-Rahman
intended to keep the feast of the Moolood at Tetuan. So this capture
of Naomi was the luckiest chance that could have befallen him at such
a moment. She should witness to the Prophet; her father, the Jew,
would thereby lose his rights in her; and he himself, as her sole
guardian, would present her as a peace-offering to the Sultan on
crossing the boundary of his bashalic.
Such was the new plan which Ben Aboo straightway conceived at
hearing the news of Habeebah, and in another moment he had propounded
it to Katrina. But when Naomi came into the patio, looking so soft,
so timid, so tired, yet so beautiful, so unlike his own painted
beauties, with the light of the dawn on her open face, with her clear
eyes and the sweet mouth of a child, his evil passions had all they
could do not to go back to his former scheme.
"So you wish to turn Muslima?" he said.
Naomi gave one dazed look around, and then cried in a voice of fear
"No, no, no!"
Ben Aboo glanced at Habeebah, and Habeebah fell upon Naomi with
protests and remonstrances. "She said so," Habeebah cried. "'I will
turn Muslima,' she said. Yes, Sidi, she said so, I swear it!"
"Did you say so?" asked Ben Aboo.
"Yes," said Naomi faintly.
"Then, by Allah, there can be no going back now," said Ben Aboo;
and he told her what was the penalty of apostasy. It was death. She
must choose between them.
Naomi began to cry, and Ben Aboo to laugh at her and Habeebah to
plead with her. Still she saw one thing only. "But what of my
father?" she said.
"He shall be liberated," said Ben Aboo.
"But shall I see him again? Shall I go back to him?" said Naomi.
"The girl is a simpleton!" said Katrina.
"She is only a child," said Ben Aboo, and with one glance more at
her flower-like face, he committed her for three days to the apartments
of his women.
These apartments consisted of a garden overgrown by straggling
weeds, with a fountain of muddy water in the middle, an oblong room
that was stifling from many perfumes, and certain smaller chambers.
The garden was inhabited by a gazelle, whose great startled eyes
looked out through the long grass; and the oblong room by a number of
women of varying ages, among whom were a matronly Mooress, called
Tarha, in a scarlet head-dress, and with a string of great keys swung
from shoulder to waist; a Circassian, called Hoolia, in a gorgeous
rida of red silk and gold brocade; a Frenchwoman, called Josephine,
with embroidered red slippers and black stockings; and a Jewess,
called Sol, with a band of silk handkerchiefs tied round her forehead
above her coal-black curls, with her fingers pricked out with henna
and her eyes darkened with kohl.
Such were Ben Aboo's wives and concubines and captives, whom he
had not divorced according to his promise; and when Naomi came among
them they did their duty by their master faithfully. Being trapped
themselves, they tried to entrap Naomi also. They overwhelmed her with
caresses, they went into ecstasies over her beauty, and caused the
future which awaited her to shine before her eyes. She would have a
noble husband, magnificent dresses, a brilliant palace, and the world
would be at her feet. "And what's the difference between Moosa and
Mohammed?" said Sol; "look at me!" "Tut!" said Josephine, "there's
nothing to choose between them." "For my part," said Tarha, "I don't
see what it matters to us; they say Paradise is for the men!" "And
think of the jewels, and the earrings as big as a bracelet," said
Hoolia, "instead of this"; and she drew away between her thumb and
first finger the blanket which Naomi's neighbour had given her.
It was all to no purpose. "But what of my father?" Naomi asked
again and again.
The women lost patience at her simplicity, gave up their
solicitations, ignored her, and busied themselves with their own
affairs. "Tut!" they said, "why should we want her to be made a wife
of the Sultan? She would only walk over us like dirt whenever she came
to Tetuan."
Then, sitting alone in their midst, listening to their talk, their
tales, their jests, and their laughter, the unseen mantle fell upon
Naomi at last, which made her a woman who had hitherto been a child.
In this hothouse of sickly odours these women lived together, having
no occupation but that of eating and drinking and sleeping, no
education but devising new means of pleasing the lust of their
husband's eye, no delight than that of supplanting one another in his
love, no passion but jealousy, no diversion but sporting on the roofs,
no end but death and the Kabar.
Seeing the uselessness of the siege, Ben Aboo transferred Naomi to
the prison, and set Habeebah to guard her. The black woman was in
terror at the turn that events had taken. There was nothing to do now
but to go on, so she importuned Naomi with prayers. How could she be
so hard-hearted? Could she keep her father famishing in prison when
one word out of her lips would liberate him? Naomi had no answer but
her tears. She remembered the hareem, and cried.
Then Ben Aboo thought of a daring plan. He called the Grand Rabbi,
and commanded him to go to Naomi and convert her to Islam. The Rabbi
obeyed with trembling. After all, it was the same God that both
peoples worshipped, only the Moors called Him Allah and the Jews
Jehovah. Naomi knew little of either. It was not of God that she was
thinking: it was only of her father. She was too innocent to see the
trick, but the Rabbi failed. He kissed her, and went away wiping his
eyes.
Rumour of Naomi's plight had passed through the town, and one night
a number of Moors came secretly to a lane at the back of the Kasbah,
where a narrow window opened into her cell. They told her in whispers
that what she held as tragical was a very simple matter. "Turn
Muslima," they pleaded, "and save yourself. You are too young to die.
Resign yourself, for God's sake." But no answer came back to them
where they were gathered in the darkness, save low sobs from inside
the wall.
At last Ben Aboo made two announcements. The first, a public one,
was that Abd er-Rahman would reach Tetuan within two days, on the
opening of the feast of the Moolood, and the other, a private one,
that if Naomi had not said the Kelmah by first prayers the following
morning she should die and her father be cut off as the penalty of her
apostasy.
That night the place under the narrow window in the dark lane was
occupied by a group of Jews. "Sister," they whispered, "sister of
our people, listen. The Basha is a hard man. This day he has robbed
us of all we had that he may pay for the Sultan's visit. Listen! We
have heard something. We want Israel ben Oliel back among us. He was
our father, he was our brother. Save his life for the sake of our
children, for the Basha has taken their bread. Save him, sister, we
beg, we entreat, we pray."
Naomi broke down at last. Next morning at dawn, kneeling among men
in the Grand Mosque in the Metamar, she repeated the Word after the
Iman: "I testify that there is no God but God, and that our Lord
Mohammed is the messenger of God; I am truly resigned."
Then she was taken back to the women's apartments, and clad
gorgeously. Her child face was wet with tears. She was only a poor
weak little thing, she knew nothing of religion, she loved her father
better than God, and all the world was against her.
Such was the method of Israel's release. But, knowing nothing of
the price which had been paid for it, he was filled with an immense
joy. Nay, his happiness was quite childish, so suddenly had the
darkness which hung over his life been lifted away. Any one who had
seen him in prison would have been puzzled by the change as he came
away from it. He laughed with the courier who walked with him to the
town gate, and jested with the gate porter as with an old
acquaintance. His voice was merry, his eye gleamed in the rays of the
lantern, his face was flushed, and his step was light. "Afraid to
travel in the night? No, no, I'll meet nothing worse than myself.
Others _may_ who meet me? Ha, ha! Perhaps so, perhaps so!" "No evil
with you, brother?" "No evil, praise be God." "Well, peace be to
you!" "On you be peace!" "May your morning be blessed! Good-night!"
"Good-night!" Then with a wave of the hand he was gone into the
darkness.
It was a wonderful night. The moon, which was in its first
quarter, was still low in the east, but the stars were thick overhead,
making a silvery dome that almost obliterated the blue. Rivers were
rumbling on the hillside, an owl was hooting in the distance, kine
that could not be seen were chewing audibly near at hand, and sheep
like patches of white in the gloom were scuttling through the grass
before Israel's footsteps. Israel walked quickly, tracing his course
between the two arms of the Jebel Sheshawan, whose summits were
visible against the sky. The air was cool and moist, and a gentle
breeze was blowing from the sea. Oh! the joy of it to him who had
lain long months in prison! Israel drank in the night air as a young
colt drinks in the wind.
And if it was night in the world without, it was day in Israel's
heart. "I am going to be happy," he told himself, "yes, very happy,
very happy." He raised his eyes to heaven, and a star, bigger and
brighter than the rest, hung over the path before him. "It is leading
me to Naomi," he thought. He knew that was folly, but he could not
restrain his mind from foolishness. And at least she had the same
moon and stars above her sleep, for she would be sleeping now. "I am
coming," he cried. He fixed his eye on the bright star in front and
pushed forward, never resting, never pausing.
The morning dawned. Long rippling waves of morning air came down
the mountains, cool, chill, and moist. The grey light became tinged
with red. Then the sun rose somewhere. It had not yet appeared, but
the peak of the western hill was flushed and a raven flew out and
perched on the point of light. Israel's breast expanded, and he
strode on with a firmer step. "She will be waking soon," he told
himself.
The world awoke. From unseen places birds began to sing--the
wheatear in the crevices of the rocks, the sedge-warbler among the
rushes of the rivers. The sun strode up over the hill summit, and
then all the earth below was bright. Dewdrops sparkled on the late
flowers, and lay like vast spiders' webs over the grass; sheep began
to bleat, dogs to bark, kine to low, horses to cross each other's
necks, and over the freshness of the air came the smell of peat and
of green boughs burning. Israel did not stop, but pushed on with new
eagerness. "She will have risen now," he told himself. He could
almost fancy he saw her opening the door and looking out for him in
the sunlight.
"Poor little thing," he thought, "how she misses me! But I am
coming, I am coming!"
The country looked very beautiful, and strangely changed since he
saw it last. Then it had been like a dead man's face; now it was like
a face that was always smiling. And though the year was so old it
seemed to be quite young. No tired look of autumn, no warning of
winter; only the freshness and vigour of spring. "I am going to see
my child, and I shall be happy yet," thought Israel. The dust of life
seemed to hang on him no longer.
He came to a little village called Dar el Fakeer--"the house of
the poor one." The place did not even justify its name, for it was a
cinereous wreck. Not a living creature was to be seen anywhere. The
village had been sacked by the Sultan's army, and its inhabitants had
fled to the mountains. Israel paused a moment, and looked into one of
the ruined houses. He knew it must have been the house of a Jew, for
he could recognise it by its smell. The floor was strewn over with
rubbish--cans, kettles, water-bottles, a woman's handkerchief, and a
dainty red slipper. On the ragged grass in the court within there
were some little stones built up into tiny squares, and bits of stick
stuck into the ground in lines. A young girl had lived in that house;
children had played there; the gaunt and silent place breathed of
their spirits still. "Poor souls!" thought Israel, but the troubles of
others could not really touch him. At that very moment his heart was
joyful.
The day was warm, but not too hot for walking. Israel did not feel
weary, and so he went on without resting. He reckoned how far it was
from Shawan to his home near Semsa. It was nearly seventy miles.
That distance would take two days and two nights to cover on foot. He
had left the prison on Wednesday night, and it would be Friday at
sunset before he reached Naomi. It was now Thursday morning. He must
lose no time. "You see, the poor little thing will be waiting,
waiting, waiting," he told himself. "These sweet creatures are all
so impatient; yes, yes, so foolishly impatient. God bless them!"
He met people on the road, and hailed them with good cheer. They
answered his greetings sadly, and a few of them told him of their
trouble. Something they said of Ben Aboo, that he demanded a hundred
dollars which they could not pay, and something of the Sultan, that he
had ransacked their houses and then gone on with his great army, his
twenty wives, and fifteen tents to keep the feast at Tetuan. But
Israel hardly knew what they told him, though he tried to lend an ear
to their story. He was thinking out a wonderful scheme for the
future. With Naomi he was to leave Morocco. They were to sail for
England. Free, mighty, noble, beautiful England! Ah, how it shone in
his memory, the little white island of the sea! His mother's home!
England! Yes, he would go back to it. True, he had no friends there
now; but what matter of that? Ah, yes, he was old, and the roll-call
of his kindred showed him pitiful gaps. His mother! Ruth! But he
had Naomi still. Naomi! He spoke her name aloud, softly, tenderly,
caressingly, as if his wrinkled hand were on her hair. Then recovering
himself, he laughed to think that he could be so childish.
Near to sunset he came upon a dooar, a tent village, in a waste
place. It was pitched in a wide circle, and opened inwards. The
animals were picketed in the centre, where children and dogs were
playing, and the voices of men and women came from inside the tents.
Fires were burning under kettles swung from triangles, and sight of
this reminded Israel that he had not eaten since the previous day. "I
must have food," he thought, "though I do not feel hungry." So he
stopped, and the wandering Arabs hailed him. "Markababikum!" they
cried from where they sat within.
"You are very welcome! Welcome to our lofty land!" Their land was
the world.
Israel went into one of the tents, and sat down to a dish of boiled
beans and black bread. It was very sweet. A man was eating beside
him; a woman, half dressed, and with face uncovered, was suckling a
child while she worked a loom which was fastened to the tent's two
upright poles. Some fowls were nestling for the night under the tent
wing, and a young girl was by turns churning milk by tossing it in a
goat's-skin and baking cakes on a fire of dried thistles crackling in
a hole over three stones. All were laughing together, and Israel
laughed along with them.
"On a long journey, brother?" said the man,
"No, oh no, no," said Israel. "Only to Semsa, no farther."
"Well, you must sleep here to-night," said the Arab.
"Ah, I cannot do that," said Israel.
"No?"
"You see, I am going back to my little daughter. She is alone,
poor child, and has not seen her old father for months. Really it is
wrong of a man to stay away such a time. These tender creatures are so
impatient, you know. And then they imagine such things, do they not?
Well, I suppose we must humour them-- that's what I always say."
"But look, the night is coming, and a dark one, too!" said the
woman.
"Oh, nothing, that's nothing, sister," said Israel." Well, peace!
Farewell all, farewell!"
Waving his hand he went away laughing, but before he had gone far
the darkness overtook him. It came down from the mountains like a
dense black cloud. Not a star in the sky, not a gleam on the land,
darkness ahead of him, darkness behind, one thick pall hanging in the
air on every side. Still for a while he toiled along. Every step was
an effort. The ground seemed to sink under him. It was like walking
on mattresses. He began to feel tired and nervous and spiritless. A
cold sweat broke out on his brow, and at length, when the sound of a
river came from somewhere near, though on which side of him he could
not tell, he had no choice but to stop. "After all, it is better," he
thought. "Strange, how things happen for the best! I must sleep
to-night, for to-morrow night I will get no sleep at all. No, for I
shall have so many things to say and to ask and to hear."
Consoling him thus, he tried to sleep where he was, and as slumber
crept upon him in the darkness, with five-and-twenty heavy miles of
dense night between him and his home, he crooned and talked to himself
in a childish way that he might comfort his aching heart. "Yes, I
must sleep--sleep--to-morrow _she_ must sleep and I must watch by
her--watch by her as I used to do--used to do--how soft and
beautiful--how beautiful--sleeping--sleep--Ah!"
When he awoke the sun had risen. The sea lay before him in the
distance, the blue Mediterranean stretching out to the blue sky. He
was on the borders of the country of the Beni-Hassan, and, after
wading the river, which he had heard in the night, he began again on
his journey. It was now Friday morning, and by sunset of that day he
would be back at his home near Semsa. Already he could see Tetuan far
away, girt by its white walls, and perched on the hillside. Yonder it
lay in the sunlight, with the snow-tipped heights above it, a white
blaze surrounded by orange orchards.
But how dizzy he was! How the world went round! How the earth
trembled! Was the glare of the sun too fierce that morning, or had his
eyes grown dim? Going blind? Well, even so, he would not repine,
for Naomi could see now. She would see for him also. How sweet to
see through Naomi's eyes! Naomi was young and joyous, and bright and
blithe. All the world was new to her, and strange and beautiful. It
would be a second and far sweeter youth.
Naomi--Naomi--always Naomi! He had thought of her hitherto as she
had appeared to him during the few days of their happy lives at Semsa.
But now he began to wonder if time had not changed her since then.
Two months and a half--it seemed so long! He had visions of Naomi
grown from a sweet girl to a lovely woman. A great soul beamed out of
her big, slow eyes. He himself approached her meekly, humbly,
reverently. Nevertheless, he was her father still--her old, tired,
dim-eyed father; and she led him here and there, and described things
to him. He could see and hear it all. First Naomi's voice: "A bow in
the sky--red, blue, crimson--oh!" Then his own deeper one, out of its
lightsome darkness: "A rainbow, child!" Ah! the dreams were
beautiful!
He tried to recall the very tones of Naomi's voice--the voice of
his poor dead Ruth--and to remember the song that she used to
sing--the song she sang in the patio on that great night of the
moonlight, when he was returning home from the Bab Ramooz, and heard
her singing from the street--
Within my heart a voice
Bids earth and heaven rejoice.
He sang the song to himself as he toiled along. With a little lisp
he sang it, so that he might cheat himself and think that the voice
he was making was Naomi's voice and not his own.
Towards midday Israel came under the walls of Tetuan, between the
Sultan's gardens and the flour-mills that are turned by the escaping
sewers, and there he lit upon a company of Jews. They were a
deputation that had come out from the town to meet him, and at first
sight of his face they were shocked. He had left Tetuan a stricken
man, it was true, but strong and firm, fifty years of age and
resolute. Six months had passed, and he was coming back as a weak,
broken, shattered, doddering, infirm old man of eighty. Their hearts
fell low before they spoke, but after a pause one of them--Israel knew
him: a grey-bearded man, his name was Solomon Laredo--stepped up and
said, "Israel ben Oliel, our poor Tetuan is in trouble. It needs you.
Alas! we dealt ill with you, but God has punished us, and we are
brothers now. Come back to us, we pray of you; for we have heard of a
great thing that is coming to pass. Listen!"
Something they told him then of Mohammed of Mequinez, follower of
Seedna Aissa (Jesus of Nazareth), but a good man nevertheless, and
also something they said of the Spaniards and of one Marshal O'Donnel,
who was to bombard Marteel. But Israel heard very little. "I think
my hearing must be failing me," he said; and then he laughed lightly,
as if that did not greatly matter. "And to tell you the truth, though
I pity my poor brethren, I can no longer help them. God will raise up
a better minister."
"Never!" cried the Jews in many voices.
"Anyhow," said Israel, "my life among you is ended. I set no store
by place and power. What does the English poet say, 'In the great
hand of God I stand.' Shakespeare--oh, a mighty creature--one who knew
where the soul of a man lay. But I forget, you've not lived in
England. Do you know I am to go there again, and to take my little
daughter? You remember her--Naomi--a charming girl. She can see now,
and hear, and speak also! Yes for God has lifted His hand away from
her, and I am going to be very happy. Well, I must leave you,
brothers. The little one will be waiting. I must not keep her too
long, must I? Peace, peace!"
Seeing his profound faith, no one dared to tell him the truth that
was on every tongue. A wave of compassion swept over all. The
deputation stood and watched him until he had sunk under the hill.
And now, being come thus near to home, Israel's impatience robbed
him of some of his happy confidence and filled him with fears. He
began to think of all the evil chances that might have befallen Naomi.
His absence had been so long, and so many things might have happened
since he went away. In this mood he tried to run. It was a poor
uncertain shamble. At nearly every step the body lurched for poise
and balance.
At last he came to a point of the path from which, as he knew, the
little rush-covered house ought to be seen. "It's yonder," he cried,
and pointed it out to himself with uplifted finger. The sun was
sinking, and its strong rays were in his face. "She's there, I see
her!" he shouted. A few minutes later he was near the door. "No, my
eyes deceived me," he said in a damp voice. "Or perhaps she has gone
in--perhaps she's hiding--the sweet rogue!"
The door was half open; he pushed it and entered the house.
"Naomi!" he called in a voice like a caress. "Naomi!" His voice
trembled now. "Come to me, come, dearest; come quickly, quickly, I
cannot see!" He listened. There was not a sound, not a movement.
"Naomi!" The name was like a gurgle in his throat. There was a
pause, and then he said very feebly and simply, "She's not here."
He looked around, and picked up something from the floor. It was a
slipper covered with mould. As he gazed upon it a change came over
his face. Dead? Was Naomi dead? He had thought of death before--for
himself, for others, never for Naomi. At a stride the awful thing was
on him. Death! Oh, oh!
With a helpless, broken, blind look he was standing in the middle
of the floor with the slipper in his hand, when a footstep came to
the door. He flung the slipper away and threw open his arms.
Naomi--it must be she!
It was Fatimah. She had come in secret, that the evil news of
what had been done at the Kasbah and the Mosque might not be broken to
Israel too suddenly. He met her with a terrible question. "Where is
she laid?" he said in a voice of awe.
Fatimah saw his error instantly. "Naomi is alive," she said, and,
seeing how the clouds lifted off his face, she added quickly, "and
well, very well."
That is not telling a falsehood, she thought; but when Israel,
with a cry of joy which was partly pain, flung his arms about her,
she saw what she had done.
"Where is she?" he cried. "Bring her, you dear, good soul. Why is
she not here? Lead me to her, lead me!"
Then Fatimah began to wring her hands. "Alas!" she said, weeping,
"that cannot be."
Israel steadied himself and waited. "She cannot come to you, and
neither can you go to her." said Fatimah. "But she is well, oh! very
well. Poor child, she is at the Kasbah--no, no, not the prison-- oh
no, she is happy--I mean she is well, yes, and cared for--indeed, she
is at the palace--the women's palace--but set your mind easy--she--"
With such broken, blundering words the good woman blurted out the
truth, and tried to deaden the blow of it. But the soul lives fast,
and Israel lived a lifetime in that moment.
"The palace!" he said in a bewildered way. "The women's palace--
the women's--" and then broke off shortly. "Fatimah, I want to go to
Naomi," he said.
And Fatimah stammered, "Alas! alas! you cannot, you never can--"
"Fatimah," said Israel, with an awful calm. "Can't you see, woman,
I have come home? I and Naomi have been long parted. Do you not
understand?--I want to go to my daughter."
"Yes, yes," said Fatimah; "but you can never go to her any more.
She is in the women's apartments--"
Then a great hoarse groan came from Israel's throat.
"Poor child, it was not her fault. Listen," said Fatimah; "only
listen."
But Israel would hear no more. The torrent of his fury bore down
everything before it. Fatimah's feeble protests were drowned.
"Silence!" he cried. "What need is there for words? She is in the
palace!--that's enough. The women's palace--the hareem--what more is
there to say?"
Putting the fact so to his own consciousness, and seeing it grossly
in all its horror, his passion fell like a breaking in of waters. "O
God!" he cried, "my enemy casts me into prison. I lie there, rotting,
starving. I think of my little daughter left behind alone. I hasten
home to her. But where is she? She is gone. She is in the house of
my enemy. Curse her! . . . . Ah! no, no; not that, either! Pardon
me, O God; not that, whatever happens! But the palace--the women's
palace. Naomi! My little daughter! Her face was so sweet, so simple.
I could have sworn that she was innocent. My love! my dove! I had
only to look at her to see that she loved me! And now the
hareem--that hell, and Ben Aboo--that libertine! I have lost her for
ever! Yet her soul was mine--I wrestled with God for it--"
He stopped suddenly, his face became awfully discoloured, he
dropped to his knees on the floor, lifted his eyes and his hands
towards heaven, and cried in a voice at once stern and heartrending,
"Kill her, O God! Kill her body, O my God, that her soul may be mine
again!"
At this awful cry Fatimah fled out of the hut. It was the last
voice of tottering reason. After that he became quiet, and when
Fatimah returned the following morning he was talking to himself in a
childish way while sitting at the door, and gazing before him with a
lifeless look. Sometimes he quoted Scriptures